Selected quad for the lemma: england_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
england_n church_n doctrine_n homily_n 2,580 5 12.0475 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A61627 Several conferences between a Romish priest, a fanatick chaplain, and a divine of the Church of England concerning the idolatry of the Church of Rome, being a full answer to the late dialogues of T.G. Stillingfleet, Edward, 1635-1699. 1679 (1679) Wing S5667; ESTC R18131 239,123 580

There are 36 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

to_o reason_n therefore_o i_o pray_v let_v we_o set_v aside_o all_o rude_a and_o unbecoming_a reflection_n and_o calm_o consider_v how_o t._n g._n prove_v that_o the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n be_v not_o agreeable_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n r._n p._n hold_v sir_n you_o be_v a_o little_a too_o nimble_a 13._o t._n g._n say_v his_o intention_n be_v only_o to_o show_v that_o dr._n st._n have_v not_o sufficient_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n from_o the_o testimony_n he_o then_o produce_v whatsoever_o he_o may_v or_o can_v do_v from_o other_o act_n or_o author_n of_o that_o church_n and_o he_o elsewhere_o say_v that_o t._n g._n do_v not_o dispute_v ex_fw-la professo_fw-la 10._o whether_o it_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v guilty_a of_o idolatry_n or_o no_o nor_o whether_o dr._n st._n dissent_v from_o the_o sense_n of_o his_o church_n but_o what_o he_o undertake_v to_o show_v be_v no_o more_o than_o that_o two_o part_n of_o the_o author_n there_o cite_v by_o the_o dr._n be_v puritan_n or_o puritanical_o incline_v by_o the_o confession_n of_o other_o divine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o therefore_o according_a to_o dr._n sy_n be_v own_o measure_n if_o they_o be_v good_a their_o testimony_n ought_v to_o be_v look_v on_o as_o incompetent_a to_o prove_v what_o he_o assert_v and_o for_o the_o other_o six_o that_o what_o they_o charge_v with_o idolatry_n be_v not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o some_o thing_n which_o they_o conceive_v to_o be_v great_a abuse_n in_o the_o practice_n of_o it_o and_o this_o he_o say_v be_v the_o true_a state_n of_o that_o controversy_n p.d._n if_o it_o be_v so_o i_o cry_v t.g._n mercy_n for_o i_o think_v he_o design_v to_o prove_v this_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n not_o to_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o you_o say_v t._n g._n now_o deny_v it_o and_o if_o i_o be_v as_o dr._n st._n i_o will_v thank_v he_o for_o it_o for_o will_v any_o man_n say_v this_o that_o think_v it_o can_v ever_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v against_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o what_o can_v have_v be_v more_o material_a to_o his_o purpose_n than_o this_o if_o it_o can_v have_v be_v do_v well_o fare_n t._n g.'s_n ingenuity_n for_o once_o that_o find_v it_o impossible_a to_o be_v do_v he_o now_o deny_v that_o he_o ever_o attempt_v the_o do_v it_o but_o the_o first_o question_n in_o a_o fray_n be_v how_o fall_v they_o out_o we_o shall_v better_o judge_v of_o t._n g.'s_n design_n by_o the_o occasion_n of_o it_o dr._n st._n affirm_v that_o in_o the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n he_o do_v not_o contradict_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v he_o or_o do_v he_o not_o if_o he_o do_v not_o dr._n st._n be_v in_o the_o right_n if_o he_o do_v why_o do_v not_o t._n g._n show_v it_o but_o after_o this_o yield_a up_o the_o main_a point_n in_o effect_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o prove_v that_o t._n g._n do_v design_n to_o show_v as_o well_o as_o he_o can_v that_o the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n be_v against_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o find_v it_o will_v not_o do_v he_o now_o disow_v it_o for_o 1._o do_v not_o t._n g._n appeal_v to_o the_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n for_o the_o most_o authentic_a declaration_n of_o her_o sense_n and_o because_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o there_o charge_v with_o idolatry_n do_v he_o not_o hence_o dispute_v ex_fw-la professo_fw-la 197._o that_o it_o be_v against_o her_o sense_n to_o what_o purpose_n be_v that_o ingenious_a criticism_n of_o be_v rather_o repugnant_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o he_o interpret_v as_o though_o the_o composer_n of_o our_o article_n have_v do_v their_o endeavour_n to_o find_v a_o command_n against_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n but_o can_v not_o what_o do_v you_o think_v of_o this_o argument_n what_o do_v t._n g._n intend_v to_o prove_v by_o it_o be_v it_o not_o as_o clear_v as_o the_o sun_n that_o it_o be_v to_o show_v that_o the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n be_v against_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n why_o then_o be_v t._n g._n ashamed_a now_o of_o it_o and_o deny_v he_o have_v any_o such_o design_n there_o must_v be_v some_o more_o than_o ordinary_a cause_n of_o a_o man_n deny_v what_o he_o once_o so_o open_o avow_v to_o do_v nay_o in_o these_o very_a dialogue_n after_o repeat_v his_o former_a word_n t._n g._n say_v 62._o thus_o clear_o have_v t._n g._n evince_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o this_o matter_n say_v you_o so_o and_o yet_o never_o design_v to_o dispute_v ex_fw-la professo_fw-la whether_o it_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n or_o not_o who_o be_v it_o i_o pray_v have_v the_o knack_n of_o say_v and_o unsay_n of_o affirm_v and_o deny_v the_o very_a same_o thing_n in_o a_o few_o leaf_n or_o do_v t._n g._n never_o intend_v any_o such_o thing_n but_o the_o church_n of_o england_n of_o her_o own_o accord_n know_v t._n g.'s_n good_a affection_n to_o she_o step_v into_o the_o court_n and_o declare_v her_o sense_n have_v we_o not_o the_o best_a nature_a church_n in_o the_o world_n that_o be_v so_o kind_a to_o her_o enemy_n and_o express_v her_o sense_n to_o be_v on_o their_o side_n whether_o they_o will_v or_o not_o our_o church_n then_o be_v like_o the_o country_n man_n river_n which_o come_v without_o call_v alas_o what_o need_n t._n g._n dispute_n ex_fw-la professo_fw-la what_o her_o sense_n be_v she_o offer_v she_o own_o testimony_n and_o desire_n to_o be_v hear_v in_o the_o dispute_n whether_o t._n g._n will_n or_o not_o let_v any_o man_n judge_n by_o these_o word_n what_o t._n g.'s_n design_n be_v then_o whatever_o he_o think_v fit_a to_o own_o now_o 2._o he_o show_v that_o if_o it_o have_v be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o the_o article_n idol_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v guilty_a of_o idolatry_n in_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n adoration_n of_o the_o host_n or_o invocation_n of_o saint_n all_o those_o who_o deny_v it_o will_v have_v incur_v excommunication_n ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la as_o appear_v by_o the_o canon_n what_o be_v t._n g.'s_n design_n in_o this_o if_o it_o be_v not_o to_o prove_v the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n to_o be_v against_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v this_o only_a to_o show_v the_o witness_n dr._n st._n produce_v to_o be_v incompetent_a what_o a_o benefit_n it_o be_v for_o a_o man_n to_o forget_v what_o he_o have_v no_o mind_n to_o remember_v and_o then_o to_o deny_v as_o stout_o as_o if_o the_o thing_n have_v never_o be_v do_v 3._o be_v it_o not_o t._n g._n who_o in_o term_n assert_n that_o dr._n st._n betray_v his_o church_n in_o advance_v such_o a_o medium_n as_o contradict_v the_o sense_n of_o that_o church_n mark_v that_o it_o be_v true_a he_o add_v if_o it_o be_v to_o be_v take_v from_o the_o sentiment_n of_o those_o who_o be_v esteem_v her_o true_a and_o genuine_a son_n be_v it_o t._n g.'s_n design_n then_o not_o to_o dispute_v what_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n nor_o whether_o dr._n st._n dissent_v from_o it_o i_o will_v not_o meddle_v with_o that_o whether_o t._n g._n be_v a_o competent_a judge_n who_o be_v the_o true_a and_o genuine_a son_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n no_o doubt_n in_o his_o opinion_n those_o who_o come_v near_a the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v such_o and_o advance_v such_o speculation_n as_o lay_v the_o charge_n of_o schism_n at_o her_o own_o door_n but_o true_a son_n be_v no_o more_o for_o lay_v division_n to_o the_o charge_n of_o their_o mother_n than_o the_o true_a mother_n be_v for_o divide_v the_o son_n those_o be_v certain_o the_o most_o genuine_a son_n of_o our_o church_n who_o own_o her_o doctrine_n defend_v her_o principle_n conform_v to_o her_o rule_n and_o be_v most_o ready_a to_o maintain_v her_o cause_n against_o all_o her_o enemy_n and_o among_o these_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n and_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v no_o distinction_n but_o if_o any_o frame_n a_o church_n of_o their_o own_o head_n without_o any_o regard_n to_o the_o article_n homily_n and_o current_a doctrine_n of_o our_o church_n and_o yet_o will_v call_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o themselves_o the_o only_a genuine_a son_n of_o it_o i_o do_v not_o question_v t._n g._n and_o your_o brethren_n will_v be_v glad_a to_o have_v they_o think_v so_o to_o lessen_v our_o number_n and_o impair_v
our_o interest_n but_o none_o that_o understand_v and_o value_v our_o church_n will_v endure_v such_o a_o pernicious_a discrimination_n among_o the_o son_n of_o the_o same_o mother_n as_o though_o some_o few_o be_v fatal_o determine_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o our_o church_n whatever_o their_o work_n and_o merit_n be_v and_o other_o absolute_o cast_v off_o notwithstanding_o the_o great_a service_n i_o shall_v not_o mention_v this_o but_o that_o i_o see_v t._n g._n insinuate_v all_o along_o such_o a_o distinction_n as_o this_o and_o cry_v up_o some_o person_n on_o purpose_n as_o the_o only_a genuine_a son_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o he_o may_v cast_v reproach_n upon_o other_o and_o thereby_o foment_n animosity_n among_o brethren_n but_o who_o child_n those_o be_v who_o do_v so_o i_o leave_v t._n g._n to_o consider_v r._n p._n whatever_o t._n g.'s_n intention_n be_v yet_o you_o can_v deny_v that_o he_o have_v prove_v two_o part_n in_o three_o to_o be_v incompetent_a witness_n according_a to_o his_o own_o measure_n p._n d._n not_o deny_v it_o i_o never_o see_v any_o thing_n more_o weak_o attempt_v to_o be_v prove_v as_o dr._n st._n have_v show_v at_o large_a in_o his_o preface_n bishop_n white_a be_v reject_v as_o a_o puritan_n because_o condemn_v by_o that_o party_n bishop_n jewel_n because_o k._n charles_n say_v he_o be_v not_o infallible_a bishop_n bilson_n because_o of_o his_o error_n about_o civil_a government_n though_o a_o stout_a defender_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n bishop_n davenant_n because_o he_o be_v none_o of_o the_o father_n bishop_n usher_n because_o his_o adversary_n give_v a_o ill_a character_n of_o he_o by_o this_o you_o may_v judge_v what_o powerful_a exception_n t._n g._n make_v against_o two_o part_n in_o three_o of_o the_o witness_n r._n p._n t._n g._n say_v that_o dr._n st._n rather_o wave_v the_o exception_n by_o pretty_a facetious_a artifices_fw-la of_o wit_n 9_o than_o repel_v they_o by_o a_o downright_a denial_n out_o of_o the_o affection_n catharinus_n hope_n he_o bear_v still_o to_o the_o cause_n which_o have_v be_v honour_v by_o such_o learned_a and_o godly_a bishop_n as_o jewel_n downham_n Ê‹sher_n the_o two_o abbot_n and_o davenant_n which_o be_v record_v among_o the_o puritan_n by_o the_o patronus_fw-la bonae_fw-la fidei_fw-la p._n d._n you_o may_v as_o well_o have_v quote_v surius_n &_o cochlaeus_fw-la for_o your_o church_n as_o this_o patronus_fw-la bonae_fw-la fidei_fw-la for_o we_o for_o he_o be_v a_o historian_n much_o of_o their_o size_n and_o credit_n but_o of_o he_o we_o shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o speak_v hereafter_o t._n g._n fill_v page_n after_o page_n out_o of_o he_o let_v the_o reader_n judge_n whether_o dr._n st._n do_v not_o show_v t._n g.'s_n exception_n to_o be_v vain_a and_o srivolous_a and_o consequent_o these_o remain_v substantial_a and_o competent_a witness_n and_o as_o to_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o these_o learned_a and_o pious_a prelate_n defend_v and_o honour_v dr._n st._n will_v rejoice_v to_o be_v join_v with_o they_o though_o it_o be_v in_o suffer_v reproach_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o it_o r._n p._n let_v we_o pass_v over_o these_o single_a testimony_n and_o come_v to_o the_o most_o material_a proof_n which_o dr._n st._n use_v and_o t._n g._n declare_v he_o be_v not_o yet_o convince_v by_o they_o that_o the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n p._n d._n with_o all_o my_o heart_n the_o first_o be_v from_o the_o book_n of_o homily_n not_o bare_o allow_v but_o subscribe_v to_o as_o contain_v godly_a and_o wholesome_a doctrine_n very_o necessary_a for_o these_o time_n which_o own_v this_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n not_o in_o any_o doubtful_a or_o single_a passage_n but_o in_o a_o elaborate_a discourse_n intend_v for_o the_o teacher_n as_o well_o as_o the_o people_n to_o which_o he_o add_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o homily_n be_v allow_v in_o the_o thirty_o nine_o article_n which_o be_v approve_v by_o the_o queen_n confirm_v by_o the_o subscription_n of_o both_o house_n of_o convocation_n a._n d._n 1571._o and_o therefore_o he_o desire_v t._n g._n to_o resolve_v he_o whether_o man_n of_o any_o common_a understanding_n will_v have_v subscribe_v to_o the_o book_n of_o homily_n in_o this_o manner_n if_o they_o have_v believe_v the_o main_a doctrine_n and_o design_n of_o one_o of_o they_o have_v be_v false_a and_o pernicious_a if_o say_v he_o any_o of_o the_o bishop_n have_v at_o that_o time_n think_v the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n unjust_a and_o that_o it_o have_v subvert_v the_o foundation_n of_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n will_v they_o have_v insert_v this_o into_o the_o article_n when_o it_o be_v in_o their_o power_n to_o have_v leave_v it_o out_o and_o that_o the_o homily_n contain_v a_o wholesome_a and_o godly_a doctrine_n which_o in_o their_o conscience_n they_o believe_v to_o be_v false_a and_o pernicious_a he_o may_v as_o well_o think_v he_o say_v that_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n will_v have_v allow_v calvin_n institution_n as_o contain_v a_o wholesome_a and_o godly_a doctrine_n as_o that_o man_n so_o persuade_v will_v have_v allow_v the_o homily_n against_o the_o peril_n of_o idolatry_n and_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a to_o understand_v the_o sense_n of_o our_o church_n better_o than_o by_o such_o public_a and_o authentic_a act_n of_o it_o which_o all_o person_n who_o be_v in_o any_o place_n of_o trust_n in_o the_o church_n must_v subscribe_v and_o declare_v their_o approbation_n of_o this_o homily_n have_v still_o continue_v the_o same_o the_o article_n the_o very_a same_o and_o if_o so_o they_o must_v acknowledge_v this_o have_v be_v and_o be_v to_o this_o day_n the_o sense_n of_o our_o church_n and_o to_o what_o t._n g._n say_v that_o this_o do_v not_o evince_v every_o particular_a doctrine_n contain_v in_o the_o homily_n to_o be_v godly_a and_o wholesome_a because_o the_o whole_a book_n be_v subscribe_v to_o as_o contain_v such_o doctrine_n he_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o difference_n to_o be_v make_v between_o some_o particular_a passage_n and_o expression_n in_o these_o homily_n and_o the_o main_a doctrine_n and_o design_n of_o a_o whole_a homily_n and_o between_o subscribe_v to_o a_o whole_a book_n as_o contain_v godly_a and_o wholesome_a doctrine_n though_o man_n be_v not_o so_o certain_a of_o the_o truth_n of_o every_o passage_n in_o it_o and_o if_o they_o be_v convince_v that_o any_o doctrine_n contain_v in_o it_o be_v false_a and_o pernicious_a now_o those_o who_o deny_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v guilty_a of_o idolatry_n do_v not_o only_o look_v on_o the_o charge_n as_o false_a but_o as_o of_o dangerous_a consequence_n and_o therefore_o such_o a_o subscription_n will_v be_v shuffle_n and_o dishonest_a from_o these_o thing_n lay_v together_o in_o my_o mind_n dr._n st._n have_v not_o only_o clear_o prove_v that_o the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n be_v not_o only_o own_v by_o the_o composer_n of_o the_o homily_n but_o by_o all_o who_o have_v honest_o subscribe_v to_o the_o article_n from_o that_o time_n to_o our_o own_o and_o i_o will_v be_v glad_a to_o hear_v what_o answer_n t._n g._n give_v to_o all_o this_o r._n p._n he_o answer_v first_o by_o repeat_v what_o he_o say_v before_o and_o then_o by_o show_v that_o subscription_n be_v no_o good_a argument_n 15._o consider_v what_o have_v be_v do_v and_o undo_v in_o that_o kind_n in_o the_o reign_v of_o k._n henry_n 8._o edw._n 6._o q._n marry_o and_o q._n elizabeth_n not_o to_o speak_v of_o latter_a time_n p._n d._n what_o be_v this_o but_o in_o plain_a term_n to_o say_v the_o subscriber_n of_o our_o article_n be_v man_n of_o no_o honesty_n or_o conscience_n but_o will_v say_v or_o unsay_v subscribe_v one_o thing_n or_o another_o as_o it_o serve_v their_o turn_n if_o this_o be_v his_o way_n of_o defend_v our_o church_n we_o shall_v desire_v he_o to_o defend_v his_o own_o but_o yet_o this_o do_v not_o reach_v home_o to_o the_o doctor_n argument_n which_o proceed_v not_o mere_o on_o their_o honesty_n but_o their_o have_v common_a understanding_n for_o here_o be_v no_o force_n or_o violence_n offer_v they_o they_o have_v the_o full_a power_n to_o consider_v the_o article_n and_o to_o compose_v the_o homily_n and_o will_v man_n of_o common_a sense_n put_v in_o thing_n against_o their_o own_o mind_n and_o make_v and_o approve_v and_o recommend_v homily_n which_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v themselves_o this_o evident_o prove_v the_o composer_n of_o the_o homily_n and_o convocation_n at_o that_o time_n do_v approve_v the_o doctrine_n of_o these_o homily_n for_o it_o be_v in_o their_o power_n not_o to_o have_v pass_v they_o thus_o far_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n then_o
several_a conference_n between_o a_o romish_a priest_n a_o fanatic_a chaplain_n and_o a_o divine_a of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n concern_v the_o idolatry_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o full_a answer_n to_o the_o late_a dialogue_n of_o t._n g._n london_n print_v by_o m._n w._n for_o h._n mortlock_n at_o the_o phoenix_n in_o st._n paul_n churchyard_n and_o at_o the_o white_a hart_n in_o westminster_n hall_n 1679._o imprimatur_fw-la guil._n jane_n r._n p._n d._n hen._n episc._n lond._n à_fw-la sac_fw-la dome_a may_v 6._o 1679._o the_o preface_n the_o follow_a discourse_n contain_v a_o full_a and_o distinct_a answer_n to_o the_o late_a dialogue_n of_o t.g._n wherein_o the_o reader_n may_v perceive_v what_o a_o easy_a victory_n truth_n when_o it_o stand_v its_o ground_n will_v obtain_v over_o wit_n and_o subtilty_n when_o the_o man_n who_o fall_v in_o the_o olympic_a game_n endeavour_v by_o his_o eloquence_n to_o persuade_v the_o spectator_n he_o be_v never_o down_o it_o be_v possible_a he_o may_v meet_v with_o some_o weak_a and_o other_o partial_a enough_o to_o believe_v he_o but_o the_o judge_n can_v not_o but_o smile_v at_o their_o folly_n who_o do_v not_o discern_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o firmness_n of_o the_o one_o stand_v and_o the_o other_o artificial_a rise_a the_o one_o may_v show_v more_o art_n and_o dexterity_n but_o the_o other_o have_v more_o strength_n or_o some_o other_o advantage_n i_o shall_v leave_v the_o reader_n to_o judge_v in_o these_o combat_n who_o maintain_v his_o ground_n best_o and_o who_o seek_v chief_o to_o avoid_v the_o dis-reputation_n of_o lose_v it_o he_o that_o keep_v close_o to_o his_o adversary_n decline_v no_o difficulty_n use_v no_o reproachful_a language_n or_o disingenuous_a deal_n have_v certain_o great_a assurance_n of_o the_o goodness_n of_o his_o cause_n and_o more_o hope_n to_o prevail_v than_o he_o that_o study_v for_o shift_n and_o evasion_n avoid_v the_o strong_a argument_n and_o fly_v out_o into_o impertinent_a cavil_n and_o personal_a reflection_n which_o be_v great_a sign_n that_o the_o man_n be_v conscious_a of_o the_o badness_n of_o his_o cause_n and_o despair_n of_o success_n by_o any_o other_o mean_n and_o the_o author_n of_o these_o discourse_n desire_n that_o his_o adversary_n and_o himself_o may_v stand_v or_o fall_v according_a to_o these_o measure_n as_o to_o the_o manner_n of_o write_v here_o use_v viz._n by_o way_n of_o dialogue_n it_o be_v that_o which_o his_o adversary_n lead_v he_o to_o and_o possible_o where_o the_o decency_n of_o it_o be_v well_o observe_v it_o may_v make_v controversy_n go_v down_o more_o pleasant_o than_o otherwise_o it_o will_v for_o there_o appear_v more_o life_n and_o vigour_n in_o a_o discourse_n carry_v on_o by_o several_a person_n of_o different_a humour_n and_o opinion_n than_o in_o one_o continue_a deduction_n of_o reason_n and_o the_o author_n declare_v he_o intend_v no_o reflection_n on_o any_o sober_a party_n of_o man_n among_o we_o in_o the_o representation_n make_v of_o the_o army-chaplain_n who_o bear_v the_o three_o part_n in_o the_o conference_n but_o only_o to_o show_v the_o advantage_n the_o popish_a party_n take_v from_o the_o weak_a and_o peevish_a exception_n which_o some_o man_n have_v make_v against_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o how_o they_o insinuate_v themselves_o into_o they_o on_o the_o account_n of_o their_o prejudices_fw-la against_o it_o and_o have_v make_v use_n of_o their_o indiscreet_a zeal_n to_o compass_v their_o own_o end_n which_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v a_o romance_n or_o fiction_n that_o beside_o the_o footstep_n which_o may_v be_v yet_o trace_v of_o these_o transaction_n by_o the_o mean_n and_o instrument_n which_o be_v employ_v about_o they_o we_o find_v that_o one_o of_o the_o most_o busy_a factor_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n wh●n_o he_o most_o confident_o deny_v the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o late_a horrid_a design_n do_v not_o stick_v to_o avow_v and_o own_v this_o that_o they_o do_v hope_n to_o prevail_v at_o last_o by_o join_v their_o strength_n with_o the_o obstinate_a dissenter_n in_o procure_v a_o general_n toleration_n which_o be_v all_o the_o visible_a design_n they_o be_v carry_v on_o when_o these_o discourse_n be_v write_v since_o which_o the_o face_n of_o thing_n have_v be_v so_o much_o alter_v among_o we_o and_o the_o time_n appear_v so_o busy_a and_o dangerous_a that_o it_o be_v think_v more_o adviseable_a to_o respite_v the_o publish_n of_o these_o controversial_a discourse_n till_o man_n mind_n be_v a_o little_a calm_v lest_o the_o author_n of_o they_o shall_v seem_v guilty_a of_o the_o impertinent_a diligence_n of_o archimedes_n viz._n of_o draw_v line_n in_o the_o dust_n when_o the_o enemy_n be_v ready_a to_o destroy_v we_o have_v the_o author_n have_v any_o occasion_n to_o have_v run_v away_o from_o the_o argument_n under_o debate_n between_o he_o and_o his_o adversary_n he_o do_v not_o want_v a_o fair_a opportunity_n in_o the_o present_a state_n of_o thing_n to_o have_v put_v he_o in_o mind_n of_o something_o very_o different_a from_o a_o irenicum_fw-la but_o he_o desire_v i_o to_o acquaint_v the_o reader_n that_o he_o do_v so_o perfect_o abhor_v this_o impertinent_a and_o disingenuous_a way_n of_o writing_n especial_o about_o matter_n of_o religion_n that_o he_o can_v neither_o be_v provoke_v nor_o tempt_v to_o it_o no_o not_o by_o so_o great_a and_o fresh_a a_o example_n as_o he_o have_v all_o along_o before_o his_o eye_n may_v that_o wise_a and_o gracious_a god_n who_o have_v hitherto_o defeat_v the_o cruel_a and_o malicious_a design_n of_o our_o church_n enemy_n still_o preserve_v it_o under_o the_o shadow_n of_o his_o wing_n and_o continue_v it_o a_o praise_n in_o the_o earth_n the_o content_n first_o conference_n concern_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n about_o the_o idolatry_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o introduction_n to_o it_o page_n 1_o a_o account_n of_o t._n g.'s_n late_a dialogue_n p._n 10_o of_o the_o genuine_a son_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n according_a to_o t._n g._n p._n 11.19_o of_o his_o intention_n about_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o this_o matter_n p._n 15_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o testimony_n produce_v by_o dr._n st._n p._n 20_o the_o argument_n from_o the_o homily_n defend_v p._n 22_o this_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n prove_v to_o be_v no_o heat_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o reformation_n p._n 26_o the_o argument_n from_o the_o rubric_n for_o kneel_v at_o the_o communion_n at_o large_a consider_v p._n 34_o no_o colour_n for_o idolatry_n in_o kneel_v at_o the_o eucharist_n p._n 35_o t._n g.'s_n sense_n of_o the_o rubric_n examine_v p._n 46_o of_o material_a and_o formal_a idolatry_n p._n 52_o how_o far_o the_o real_a presence_n be_v hold_v by_o our_o church_n p._n 56_o bertram_n book_v not_o the_o same_o with_o that_o of_o joh._n scotus_n p._n 63_o of_o the_o stercoranist_n p._n 64_o of_o impanation_n p._n 65_o of_o a_o corporeal_a presence_n p._n 68_o of_o b._n abbot_n be_v a_o puritan_n p._n 74_o how_o far_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v chargeable_a with_o idolatry_n p._n 79_o mr._n thorndike_n vindicate_v from_o suspicion_n of_o popery_n by_o a_o m_o s._n of_o his_o own_o writing_n here_o publish_v p._n 85_o archbishop_n whitgift_n testimony_n clear_v p._n 93_o of_o the_o distinction_n between_o part_n and_o circumstance_n of_o worship_n p._n 100_o how_o far_o the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o article_n of_o our_o church_n p._n 103_o second_v conference_n about_o the_o consequence_n of_o the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n p._n 113_o the_o introduction_n concern_v the_o restauration_n of_o learning_n be_v the_o true_a occasion_n of_o the_o reformation_n p._n 115_o of_o the_o validity_n of_o ordination_n on_o supposition_n of_o the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n p._n 121_o authority_n go_v along_o with_o the_o power_n of_o order_n by_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n p._n 125_o of_o the_o indelible_a character_n p._n 129_o the_o distinction_n between_o the_o power_n of_o order_n and_o jurisdiction_n examine_v p._n 134_o of_o excommunication_n ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la on_o the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n p._n 141_o dr._n st._n prove_v to_o have_v no_o design_n to_o undermine_v the_o church_n of_o england_n p._n 145_o the_o design_n of_o his_o irenicum_fw-la clear_v p._n 148_o how_o far_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n and_o the_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n consistent_a with_o the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n p._n 151_o a_o large_a testimony_n of_o b._n sanderson_n to_o that_o purpose_n p._n 153_o no_o necessity_n of_o assign_v a_o distinct_a church_n in_o all_o age_n p._n 158_o no_o obligation_n to_o communion_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n p._n 161_o no_o parity_n of_o reason_n in_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n of_o
the_o faith_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o more_o speak_v of_o in_o the_o apostle_n day_n than_o its_o error_n and_o corruption_n have_v be_v since_o r._n p._n these_o be_v general_a word_n name_v i_o one_o of_o those_o error_n and_o corruption_n p._n d._n for_o this_o time_n i_o will_v name_v the_o public_a and_o allow_a worship_n of_o your_o church_n which_o after_o all_o your_o shift_n and_o evasion_n i_o can_v excuse_v from_o idolatry_n r._n p._n how_o be_v that_o idolatry_n god_n forbid_v i_o do_v not_o expect_v this_o charge_n from_o a_o divine_a of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n i_o be_v prepare_v to_o receive_v it_o from_o my_o old_a fanatic_a acquaintance_n here_o he_o will_v have_v thunder_v i_o with_o the_o text_n of_o antichrist_n and_o the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n and_o have_v quote_v half_o the_o book_n of_o the_o revelation_n against_o i_o before_o this_o time_n if_o we_o have_v not_o espy_v you_o in_o the_o room_n but_o i_o perceive_v though_o your_o artillery_n may_v be_v different_a your_o charge_n be_v the_o same_o i_o pray_v tell_v i_o how_o long_o be_v it_o since_o you_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v maintain_v this_o charge_n for_o i_o have_v be_v often_o tell_v that_o only_o one_o late_a defender_n of_o your_o church_n have_v advance_v two_o new_a charge_n against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n viz._n fanaticism_n and_o idolatry_n and_o that_o the_o true_a son_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n disow_v they_o both_o p._n d._n whoever_o tell_v you_o so_o have_v deceive_v you_o but_o it_o be_v not_o the_o only_a thing_n they_o have_v deceive_v you_o in_o i_o never_o yet_o see_v so_o much_o as_o a_o tolerable_a answer_n to_o the_o charge_n of_o fanaticism_n and_o for_o that_o of_o idolatry_n the_o author_n you_o mean_v have_v prove_v beyond_o contradiction_n that_o it_o have_v be_v manage_v against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n by_o the_o great_a and_o most_o learned_a defender_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o the_o most_o genuine_a son_n of_o it_o ever_o since_o the_o reformation_n r.p._n but_o have_v not_o you_o see_v what_o t._n g._n have_v say_v to_o all_o that_o and_o how_o he_o have_v show_v that_o his_o witness_n be_v incompetent_a p._n d._n i_o have_v both_o see_v and_o consider_v all_o that_o t._n g._n have_v say_v and_o compare_v it_o with_o dr._n stillingfleet_v reply_n in_o the_o general_n preface_n to_o his_o answer_n and_o i_o must_v declare_v to_o you_o that_o if_o the_o sense_n of_o a_o church_n may_v be_v know_v by_o the_o concurrent_a sense_n of_o her_o most_o eminent_a divine_n or_o by_o her_o most_o authentic_a act_n as_o by_o the_o book_n of_o homily_n form_n of_o prayer_n and_o thanksgiving_n rubric_n injunction_n the_o judgement_n of_o convocation_n even_o that_o of_o mdcxl_o dr._n st._n have_v make_v it_o evident_a that_o the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n r._n p._n you_o think_v t._n g._n will_v have_v quit_v this_o post_n upon_o dr._n st_n second_o charge_n but_o you_o be_v mistake_v in_o he_o for_o i_o have_v bring_v over_o a_o book_n of_o dialogue_n from_o paris_n wherein_o t._n g._n undertake_v again_o to_o prove_v this_o to_o be_v only_o the_o charge_n of_o fanatic_n and_o not_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n nor_o of_o the_o genuine_a son_n of_o it_o f._n c._n it_o be_v true_a we_o who_o you_o call_v fanatic_n do_v charge_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o rather_o the_o synagogue_n of_o antichrist_n with_o idolatry_n for_o be_v it_o not_o say_v and_o they_o worship_v the_o beast_n but_o you_o must_v know_v for_o your_o comfort_n that_o we_o do_v likewise_o charge_v the_o church_n of_o england_n with_o it_o for_o what_o be_v all_o their_o bowing_n and_o kneel_n and_o cross_n but_o vain_a imagination_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o they_o be_v as_o bad_a as_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n and_o do_v not_o they_o make_v a_o idol_n of_o the_o common_a prayer_n p._n d._n this_o be_v not_o fair_a gentleman_n but_o one_o at_o once_o i_o beseech_v you_o as_o to_o your_o charge_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n i_o shall_v be_v ready_a to_o answer_v it_o when_o you_o can_v agree_v to_o bring_v it_o in_o i_o now_o desire_v to_o know_v what_o evidence_n t._n g._n bring_v to_o prove_v the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n not_o to_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v he_o bring_v other_o homily_n other_o injunction_n other_o rubric_n other_o convocation_n or_o at_o least_o other_o divine_n general_o receive_v and_o own_a for_o the_o genuine_a son_n of_o this_o church_n who_o have_v from_o time_n to_o time_n free_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n from_o idolatry_n and_o look_v upon_o the_o charge_n not_o only_o as_o unjust_a but_o pernicious_a and_o destructive_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n nay_o can_v he_o produce_v any_o one_o divine_a of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n before_o the_o convocation_n mdcxl_o that_o ever_o say_v any_o such_o thing_n or_o do_v whole_o acquit_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n from_o this_o charge_n if_o not_o let_v he_o not_o think_v we_o have_v a_o new_a church_n make_v after_o another_o model_n and_o upon_o new_a principle_n or_o that_o those_o can_v be_v esteem_v the_o genuine_a son_n of_o it_o who_o contradict_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n ever_o since_o the_o reformation_n if_o there_o be_v any_o such_o among_o we_o they_o ought_v first_o to_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v true_a son_n of_o our_o church_n before_o their_o testimony_n be_v allow_v which_o if_o i_o be_v not_o mistake_v will_v be_v much_o hard_a than_o to_o prove_v the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n to_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o but_o what_o method_n do_v t._n g._n take_v in_o this_o matter_n r.p._n t._n g._n like_o a_o wary_a man_n dispute_v in_o masquerade_n for_o he_o do_v not_o think_v fit_a to_o appear_v in_o his_o own_o person_n but_o he_o bring_v in_o a_o conformist_n and_o a_o nonconformist_a argue_v the_o point_n and_o the_o conformist_n speak_v t._n g.'s_n sense_n in_o acquit_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o nonconformist_a vindicate_v dr._n st._n and_o make_v a_o pitiful_a defence_n of_o he_o p.d._n it_o be_v very_o witty_o do_v and_o the_o scene_n be_v well_o enough_o lay_v if_o the_o plot_n be_v only_o to_o represent_v dr._n st._n as_o a_o secret_a enemy_n to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o i_o suppose_v it_o be_v but_o to_o what_o purpose_n be_v all_o those_o personal_a reflection_n and_o some_o repeat_v over_o and_o over_o with_o so_o much_o appearance_n of_o rancour_n and_o ill_a will_n as_o do_v not_o become_v a_o man_n of_o any_o common_a ingenuity_n can_v the_o catholic_n cause_n be_v maintain_v by_o no_o other_o art_n than_o these_o methinks_v t._n g._n may_v have_v let_v the_o little_a whiffler_n in_o controversy_n such_o as_o the_o author_n of_o the_o address_n to_o the_o parliament_n and_o of_o that_o precious_a pamphlet_n call_v jupiter_n dr._n st_n supreme_a god_n etc._n etc._n to_o have_v make_v a_o noise_n at_o they_o know_v not_o what_o cry_v out_o upon_o he_o as_o a_o enemy_n to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n because_o he_o defend_v her_o cause_n to_o their_o great_a vexation_n and_o as_o a_o friend_n to_o pagan_a idolatry_n because_o he_o have_v lay_v open_a the_o folly_n of_o you_o these_o be_v such_o weak_a assault_n as_o expose_v your_o cause_n to_o the_o contempt_n of_o all_o wise_a man_n who_o expect_v reason_n shall_v be_v answer_v with_o reason_n and_o not_o with_o calumny_n and_o reproach_n which_o in_o my_o apprehension_n dr._n st._n ought_v to_o rejoice_v in_o as_o the_o mark_n of_o victory_n for_o while_o they_o have_v any_o other_o ammunition_n leave_v no_o enemy_n will_v betake_v themselves_o to_o dirt_n and_o stone_n when_o i_o read_v through_o the_o first_o part_n of_o t._n g.'s_n dialogue_n and_o observe_v how_o industrious_o he_o set_v himself_o to_o bespatter_v his_o adversary_n and_o rake_v all_o the_o kennel_n he_o can_v for_o that_o purpose_n especial_o that_o of_o the_o patronus_fw-la bonae_fw-la fidei_fw-la etc._n etc._n i_o can_v not_o but_o think_v of_o a_o animal_n which_o be_v close_o pursue_v and_o in_o great_a danger_n get_v himself_o into_o the_o most_o convenient_a place_n for_o mire_n and_o dirt_n and_o there_o so_o lay_v about_o he_o with_o his_o heel_n that_o no_o one_o dare_v to_o come_v near_o he_o it_o be_v certain_o with_o some_o such_o design_n that_o t._n g._n have_v at_o last_o take_v sanctuary_n in_o a_o bog_n hope_v his_o adversary_n will_v never_o pursue_v he_o thither_o but_o notwithstanding_o this_o project_n of_o he_o we_o will_v try_v whether_o in_o spite_n of_o his_o heel_n we_o can_v bring_v he_o
and_o why_o shall_v we_o suppose_v any_o subscriber_n to_o take_v they_o in_o any_o other_o sense_n than_o the_o church_n do_v then_o mean_v they_o nay_o dr._n st._n challenge_v he_o to_o produce_v any_o one_o divine_a of_o our_o church_n who_o through_o the_o long_a reign_n of_o q._n elizabeth_n do_v so_o much_o as_o once_o question_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o charge_n do_v t._n g._n upon_o so_o long_a consideration_n of_o this_o matter_n name_v any_o r._n p._n not_o any_o that_o i_o find_v p._n d._n but_o that_o will_v be_v best_a see_v by_o consider_v dr._n st.'s_n second_o argument_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o this_o matter_n viz._n from_o the_o current_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n ever_o since_o the_o reformation_n the_o injunction_n of_o edw._n 6._o of_o cranmer_n of_o q._n elizabeth_n the_o form_n of_o thanksgiving_n a._n d._n 1594._o r._n p._n to_o this_o t._n g._n answer_n 17._o that_o this_o be_v a_o heat_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o reformation_n but_o after_o the_o crown_n be_v settle_v upon_o k._n james_n who_o title_n be_v unquestionable_a both_o at_o rome_n at_o home_n i_o suppose_v he_o mean_v and_o abroad_o the_o dangerous_a consequence_n of_o the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n begin_v to_o be_v more_o calm_o and_o mature_o consider_v and_o be_v so_o thorough_o weigh_v in_o the_o time_n of_o k._n charles_n i._o that_o as_o heylin_n say_v bishop_n laud_n hinder_v the_o reprint_v the_o book_n contain_v calvinian_a doctrine_n which_o evident_o show_v say_v he_o that_o that_o party_n never_o look_v upon_o the_o expression_n of_o idolatry_n contain_v in_o those_o injunction_n as_o the_o dogmatical_a sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n p._n d._n a_o very_a likely_a story_n that_o our_o church_n shall_v vary_v in_o its_o doctrine_n because_o k._n james_n his_o title_n to_o the_o crown_n be_v unquestionable_a it_o seem_v before_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v guilty_a of_o idolatry_n because_o q._n elizabeth_n title_n be_v not_o own_v by_o the_o pope_n what_o a_o fine_a insinuation_n be_v couch_v under_o all_o this_o viz._n that_o our_o church_n depend_v whole_o on_o the_o queen_n pleasure_n and_o fit_v her_o doctrine_n to_o serve_v she_o turn_v and_o when_o that_o be_v over_o the_o tide_n turn_v and_o that_o be_v pernicious_a doctrine_n now_o which_o be_v wholesome_a before_o and_o wholesome_a now_o which_o be_v pernicious_a before_o and_o yet_o there_o be_v the_o same_o article_n the_o same_o homily_n the_o same_o subscription_n which_o be_v before_o r._n p._n but_o he_o quote_v a_o doctor_n of_o your_o own_o church_n for_o what_o he_o say_v p._n heylin_n and_o deliver_v it_o in_o his_o word_n p._n d._n p._n heylin_n speak_v not_o one_o word_n in_o that_o place_n of_o the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n ed._n although_o t._n g._n seem_v to_o represent_v it_o so_o but_o of_o those_o who_o revile_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n itself_o and_o all_o the_o divine_a office_n ceremony_n and_o performance_n of_o it_o which_o it_o be_v plain_a he_o there_o speak_v of_o the_o genevian_a party_n for_o but_o just_a before_o he_o mention_n the_o geneva_n bible_n and_o the_o dangerous_a position_n contain_v in_o the_o annotation_n print_v with_o it_o now_o these_o person_n who_o he_o there_o speak_v of_o look_v upon_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o a_o mere_a synagogue_n of_o satan_n and_o no_o true_a church_n and_o all_o the_o office_n and_o ceremony_n of_o it_o to_o be_v so_o defile_v that_o no_o use_n can_v be_v make_v of_o they_o and_o on_o that_o account_n they_o reject_v our_o liturgy_n and_o ceremony_n as_o take_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n although_o therefore_o say_v he_o q._n elizabeth_n may_v suffer_v such_o thing_n to_o be_v print_v in_o her_o time_n yet_o b._n laud_n will_v not_o allow_v the_o reprint_n of_o they_o because_o q._n elizabeth_n may_v out_o of_o state_n policy_n suffer_v the_o violent_a transport_n of_o irregular_a zeal_n by_o reason_n of_o her_o personal_a quarrel_n with_o the_o pope_n yet_o now_o those_o reason_n be_v over_o b._n laud_n will_v not_o suffer_v they_o to_o come_v abroad_o again_o but_o that_o this_o expression_n can_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n i_o prove_v by_o these_o argument_n 1._o pet._n heylin_n himself_o preach_v before_o k._n charles_n i._n and_o archbishop_n laud_n do_v in_o plain_a term_n charge_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n with_o most_o gross_a idolatry_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o word_n cite_v at_o large_a in_o dr._n st.'s_n general_a preface_n what_o say_v t._n g._n to_o this_o r._n p._n i_o do_v not_o find_v a_o particular_a answer_n to_o this_o but_o i_o suppose_v he_o reckon_v he_o with_o those_o six_o of_o who_o he_o say_v 3●_n that_o they_o do_v not_o charge_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n itself_o but_o the_o opinion_n of_o school_n divine_v and_o abuse_n in_o practice_n p._n d._n that_o can_v be_v for_o pet._n heylin_n go_v far_a say_v that_o they_o who_o observe_v the_o manner_n of_o their_o worship_n of_o image_n with_o what_o pilgrimage_n procession_n offering_n with_o what_o affection_n prayer_n and_o humble_a bend_n of_o the_o body_n they_o have_v be_v and_o be_v worship_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n may_v very_o easy_o conceive_v that_o she_o be_v once_o again_o relapse_v into_o her_o ancient_a paganism_n r._n p._n he_o say_v they_o may_v conceive_v so_o but_o he_o do_v not_o say_v they_o may_v just_o conceive_v so_o p._n d._n this_o be_v very_o subtle_a and_o like_o t._n g._n himself_o but_o i_o pray_v observe_v p._n heylin_n when_o he_o give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n say_v when_o the_o doctrine_n which_o first_o begin_v in_o the_o school_n come_v to_o its_o growth_n what_o fruit_n can_v it_o bear_v but_o most_o gross_a idolatry_n great_a than_o which_o be_v never_o know_v among_o the_o gentile_n mark_v that_o for_o your_o satisfaction_n what_o fruit_n can_v the_o doctrine_n bear_v and_o that_o after_o it_o come_v out_o of_o the_o school_n to_o its_o growth_n and_o when_o he_o say_v they_o may_v conceive_v that_o rome_n be_v once_o again_o relapse_v into_o her_o ancient_a paganism_n the_o meaning_n be_v those_o that_o see_v their_o worship_n of_o image_n in_o modern_a rome_n and_o compare_v it_o with_o what_o be_v do_v in_o old_a rome_n will_v see_v no_o difference_n the_o idolatry_n be_v so_o gross_a in_o both_o that_o if_o there_o be_v nothing_o else_o to_o make_v a_o distinction_n a_o man_n may_v easy_o conceive_v rome_n be_v relapse_v into_o her_o ancient_a paganism_n r._n p._n but_o what_o other_o argument_n have_v you_o to_o prove_v that_o p._n heylin_n can_v not_o speak_v this_o of_o the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n p._n d._n because_o in_o his_o introduction_n he_o own_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o homily_n as_o to_o this_o point_n of_o idolatry_n and_o that_o the_o compiler_n of_o the_o homily_n be_v the_o more_o earnest_a in_o this_o point_n of_o remove_v or_o exclude_v image_n 14._o the_o better_a to_o wean_v the_o people_n from_o the_o sin_n of_o idolatry_n in_o which_o they_o have_v be_v train_v up_o from_o their_o very_a infancy_n and_o after_o he_o add_v the_o people_n of_o this_o last_o age_n be_v sufficient_o instruct_v in_o the_o unlawfulness_n of_o worship_v such_o paint_a image_n they_o may_v be_v lawful_o use_v in_o church_n without_o fear_n of_o idolatry_n what_o can_v this_o signify_v if_o he_o do_v not_o take_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n to_o be_v idolatry_n and_o therefore_o he_o can_v not_o look_v upon_o this_o as_o a_o heat_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o reformation_n and_o which_o be_v quite_o spend_v in_o the_o time_n of_o b._n laud_n since_o not_o only_a p._n heylin_n but_o the_o archbishop_n himself_o say_v 277._o that_o the_o modern_a church_n of_o rome_n be_v too_o like_a paganism_n in_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n and_o drive_v to_o scarce_o intelligible_a subtlety_n in_o her_o servant_n write_n that_o defend_v it_o and_o this_o without_o any_o care_n have_v of_o million_o of_o soul_n unable_a to_o understand_v her_o subtlety_n or_o shun_v her_o practice_n and_o in_o his_o defence_n against_o the_o charge_n of_o the_o commons_o he_o say_v 472._o that_o he_o have_v write_v against_o the_o adoration_n and_o superstitious_a use_n of_o image_n as_o full_o as_o any_o man_n whatsoever_o what_o think_v you_o now_o sir_n be_v this_o a_o heat_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o reformation_n and_o when_o man_n in_o archbishop_n laud_n time_n more_o due_o weigh_v the_o consequence_n of_o this_o charge_n they_o grow_v both_o cool_a and_o wise_a what_o evidence_n do_v t._n g._n produce_v for_o this_o when_o the_o very_a person_n he_o produce_v for_o it_o be_v so_o far_o from_o it_o that_o he_o say_v the_o contrary_a and_o
find_v it_o above_o a_o hundred_o year_n before_o in_o the_o liturgy_n of_o edw._n 6._o to_o which_o t._n g._n answer_n 19_o that_o the_o various_a fate_n of_o this_o rubric_n first_o in_o not_o be_v annex_v till_o the_o second_o liturgy_n of_o edw._n 6._o and_o be_v cast_v out_o again_o in_o the_o year_n 1562._o and_o then_o admit_v again_o almost_o a_o hundred_o year_n after_o be_v no_o eviction_n to_o he_o that_o the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n be_v the_o dogmatical_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n p._n d._n if_o this_o be_v all_o the_o declaration_n our_o church_n have_v make_v of_o her_o sense_n and_o the_o intention_n of_o this_o rubric_n be_v only_o to_o declare_v this_o point_n of_o idolatry_n there_o be_v some_o probability_n in_o what_o t._n g._n suggest_v but_o i_o have_v show_v already_o how_o full_o our_o church_n have_v declare_v her_o sense_n about_o romish_a idolatry_n by_o other_o way_n and_o the_o design_n of_o this_o rubric_n be_v not_o to_o express_v her_o sense_n of_o idolatry_n so_o much_o as_o to_o give_v satisfaction_n to_o those_o who_o scruple_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o kneel_v for_o which_o cause_n it_o be_v first_o put_v in_o and_o afterward_o not_o think_v necessary_a to_o be_v continue_v when_o person_n be_v better_o satisfy_v about_o the_o intention_n of_o our_o church_n but_o when_o after_o long_a disuse_n and_o violent_a prejudices_fw-la the_o dissenter_n be_v grow_v unacquainted_a with_o the_o design_n and_o intention_n of_o our_o church_n there_o be_v the_o same_o reason_n for_o insert_v it_o again_o which_o hold_v at_o first_o for_o put_v it_o in_o and_o what_o now_o have_v t._n g._n gain_v by_o this_o observation_n if_o it_o have_v be_v as_o he_o imagine_v what_o he_o have_v get_v in_o one_o point_n he_o have_v lose_v in_o another_o for_o than_o it_o will_v appear_v that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o heat_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o q._n elizabeth_n day_n if_o they_o be_v willing_a to_o leave_v out_o such_o a_o declaration_n of_o the_o idolatry_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n at_o that_o time_n when_o q._n elizabeth_n title_n be_v the_o most_o dispute_v at_o rome_n so_o that_o from_o hence_o appear_v the_o vanity_n of_o t._n g.'s_n former_a observation_n and_o how_o far_o they_o be_v from_o take_v thing_n into_o our_o liturgy_n out_o of_o spite_n to_o the_o pope_n nay_o so_o far_o be_v they_o from_o this_o that_o in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o q._n elizabeth_n that_o petition_n in_o the_o litany_n be_v leave_v out_o which_o have_v be_v insert_v by_o henry_n 8._o and_o continue_v in_o both_o liturgy_n of_o edw._n 6._o 418._o from_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o all_o his_o detestable_a enormity_n good_a lord_n and_o this_o he_o may_v have_v find_v in_o the_o same_o historian_n and_o be_v not_o the_o title_n of_o head_n of_o the_o church_n take_v by_o her_o father_n and_o brother_n so_o qualify_v and_o explain_v then_o as_o may_v prevent_v any_o occasion_n of_o quarrel_v at_o it_o by_o the_o most_o captious_a person_n do_v these_o passage_n look_v like_o do_v thing_n on_o purpose_n to_o provoke_v and_o exasperate_v and_o out_o of_o pure_a spite_n to_o the_o pope_n or_o like_o put_v in_o thing_n on_o purpose_n to_o heighten_v the_o difference_n when_o t._n g._n himself_o confess_v they_o leave_v out_o this_o rubric_n and_o it_o be_v evident_a they_o do_v leave_v out_o some_o of_o the_o most_o provoke_a expression_n r._n p._n i_o see_v you_o can_v bear_v the_o charge_n of_o intemperate_a heat_n on_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o reformation_n p._n d._n i_o can_v bear_v such_o a_o unreasonable_a and_o unjust_a imputation_n as_o this_o be_v and_o i_o have_v a_o particular_a esteem_n for_o the_o wisdom_n learning_n and_o piety_n which_o be_v show_v in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a part_n of_o our_o reformation_n but_o how_o do_v t._n g._n take_v off_o the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n in_o this_o rubric_n r._n p._n 21._o he_o say_v he_o take_v the_o meaning_n of_o it_o not_o to_o be_v the_o deny_v adoration_n to_o be_v due_a in_o regard_n of_o christ_n body_n be_v present_a spiritual_o but_o true_o in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o only_o that_o no_o adoration_n ought_v to_o be_v do_v to_o any_o corporal_a presence_n of_o christ_n natural_a flesh_n and_o blood_n as_o the_o word_n corporal_n be_v take_v to_o signify_v the_o natural_a manner_n of_o a_o body_n be_v present_a for_o which_o he_o give_v these_o reason_n 1._o because_o those_o word_n in_o the_o second_o liturgy_n of_o edw._n 6._o no_o adoration_n ought_v to_o be_v do_v to_o any_o real_a or_o essential_a be_v of_o christ_n natural_a flesh_n and_o blood_n be_v now_o change_v into_o any_o corporal_a presence_n of_o christ_n natural_a flesh_n and_o blood_n 2._o because_o the_o protestant_a divine_n do_v yield_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n for_o which_o he_o quote_v bishop_n taylor_n and_o bishop_n cousin_n and_o he_o desire_v dr._n st._n so_o to_o explain_v these_o word_n as_o not_o to_o undermine_v the_o constant_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n concern_v the_o real_a presence_n and_o leave_v we_o nothing_o but_o pure_a zuinglianism_n in_o the_o place_n of_o it_o p._n d._n i_o be_o so_o much_o his_o friend_n that_o at_o this_o time_n i_o will_v undertake_v this_o task_n for_o he_o first_o we_o must_v consider_v the_o word_n of_o the_o rubric_n 2._o how_o this_o sense_n of_o it_o can_v be_v reconcile_v with_o the_o real_a presence_n as_o own_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n 1._o for_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o rubric_n we_o be_v to_o consider_v that_o the_o rubric_n deny_v adoration_n to_o be_v intend_v either_o unto_o the_o sacramental_a bread_n and_o wine_n or_o unto_o any_o corporal_a presence_n of_o christ_n natural_a flesh_n and_o blood_n and_o after_o it_o give_v two_o distinct_a reason_n for_o deny_v adoration_n to_o either_o of_o these_o 1._o to_o the_o sacramental_a bread_n and_o wine_n for_o this_o reason_n because_o they_o remain_v still_o in_o their_o very_a natural_a substance_n and_o therefore_o may_v not_o be_v adore_v for_o that_o be_v idolatry_n to_o be_v abhor_v of_o all_o faithful_a christian_n 2._o to_o the_o corporal_a presence_n of_o christ_n natural_a flesh_n and_o blood_n because_o the_o natural_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v in_o heaven_n and_o not_o here_o it_o be_v against_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n natural_a body_n to_o be_v at_o one_o time_n in_o more_o place_n than_o one_o you_o see_v here_o be_v two_o plain_o distinct_a reason_n give_v for_o deny_v adoration_n to_o the_o element_n and_o to_o the_o natural_a body_n of_o christ._n the_o former_a be_v say_v to_o be_v idolatry_n the_o latter_a to_o be_v absurd_a and_o unreasonable_a it_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n body_n to_o be_v in_o more_o place_n than_o one_o at_o one_o time_n so_o that_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o rubric_n lie_v in_o these_o two_o proposition_n 1._o that_o it_o be_v idolatry_n to_o give_v adoration_n to_o the_o element_n remain_v in_o their_o natural_a substance_n 2._o that_o it_o be_v absurd_a to_o believe_v christ_n natural_a body_n to_o be_v present_a because_o than_o it_o must_v be_v in_o more_o place_n than_o one_o which_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o a_o body_n these_o thing_n to_o my_o apprehension_n be_v the_o plain_a and_o natural_a sense_n of_o this_o rubric_n r._n p._n but_o we_o do_v not_o give_v adoration_n to_o the_o sacramental_a element_n but_o to_o the_o body_n of_o christ._n p._n d._n i_o do_v believe_v i_o can_v prove_v that_o you_o give_v adoration_n to_o the_o sacramental_a element_n as_o they_o make_v up_o one_o entire_a object_n of_o adoration_n with_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o that_o be_v not_o my_o present_a business_n which_o be_v to_o show_v the_o sense_n of_o our_o church_n which_o lie_v in_o these_o particular_n 1._o that_o the_o sacramental_a element_n do_v remain_v in_o their_o natural_a substance_n after_o consecration_n 2._o that_o to_o adore_v they_o so_o remain_v be_v idolatry_n and_o to_o be_v abhor_v of_o all_o faithful_a christian_n no_o one_o question_n the_o former_a to_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o our_o church_n the_o only_a question_n lie_v in_o the_o late_a whether_o that_o be_v idolatry_n or_o no_o it_o be_v no_o question_n that_o to_o give_v divine_a adoration_n to_o any_o creature_n be_v idolatry_n and_o it_o be_v so_o acknowledge_v on_o all_o side_n the_o only_a question_n than_o can_v be_v whether_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v a_o creature_n or_o not_o and_o this_o be_v no_o question_n with_o any_o man_n in_o his_o wit_n therefore_o to_o give_v adoration_n to_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v idolatry_n no_o demonstration_n
resolve_v to_o believe_v it_o for_o the_o authority_n of_o your_o church_n can_v never_o persuade_v any_o man_n that_o be_v not_o r._n p._n when_o you_o be_v get_v to_o this_o point_n of_o transubstantiation_n it_o be_v hard_o to_o get_v you_o off_o it_o be_v the_o sore_a place_n of_o our_o church_n and_o you_o be_v like_o fly_n in_o summer_n always_o busy_a about_o it_o i_o pray_v return_n to_o your_o rubric_n for_o you_o seem_v to_o have_v forget_v it_o p._n d._n no_o i_o have_v be_v pursue_v it_o hitherto_o r._n p._n but_o what_o say_v you_o to_o t._n g.'s_n reason_n why_o this_o must_v be_v understand_v of_o a_o corporeal_a presence_n of_o christ_n natural_a body_n because_o you_o else_o overthrow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o a_o real_a presence_n which_o have_v be_v account_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n p._n d._n to_o this_o i_o answer_v 1._o the_o rubric_n say_v express_o that_o it_o be_v against_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n natural_a body_n to_o be_v at_o one_o time_n in_o more_o place_n than_o one_o it_o do_v not_o say_v against_o the_o corporeal_a presence_n of_o his_o natural_a body_n but_o the_o truth_n of_o it_o from_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o our_o church_n believe_v the_o true_a natural_a body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n suffer_v on_o the_o cross_n and_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n can_v be_v but_o in_o one_o place_n which_o be_v declare_v in_o the_o forego_n word_n and_o the_o natural_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v in_o heaven_n and_o not_o here_o i._n e._n in_o heaven_n exclusive_o from_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v not_o true_a if_o the_o same_o natural_a body_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v at_o the_o same_o time_n in_o heaven_n and_o in_o the_o host._n r._n p._n how_o then_o can_v your_o divine_n hold_v a_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n as_o t._n g._n say_v they_o do_v p._n d._n you_o have_v hear_v if_o you_o have_v stay_v till_o i_o come_v to_o my_o second_o answer_n which_o be_v that_o notwithstanding_o this_o our_o church_n do_v hold_v that_o after_o consecration_n the_o element_n do_v become_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o there_o be_v a_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n but_o not_o of_o his_o natural_a but_o of_o a_o mystical_a body_n i_o will_v endeavour_v to_o make_v this_o out_o to_o you_o because_o you_o look_v strange_o upon_o i_o as_o if_o i_o be_v big_a of_o some_o mighty_a paradox_n when_o paschasius_fw-la radbertus_n do_v first_o broach_v the_o modern_a doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n about_o the_o same_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o b._n virgin_n in_o the_o western_a church_n he_o meet_v with_o great_a opposition_n therein_o from_o the_o most_o learned_a divine_n of_o that_o age_n among_o the_o rest_n there_o live_v then_o in_o the_o court_n of_o carolus_n calvus_n a_o man_n very_o eminent_a for_o his_o learning_n call_v joh._n scotus_n or_o erigena_n this_o man_n at_o the_o request_n of_o carolus_n calvus_n deliver_v his_o opinion_n direct_o contrary_a to_o paschasius_fw-la for_o whereas_o he_o assert_v that_o the_o very_a same_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o b._n virgin_n be_v invisible_o present_a under_o the_o accident_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n scotus_n deny_v that_o the_o element_n be_v in_o any_o real_a sense_n after_o consecration_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n the_o sacrament_n be_v only_o a_o bare_a commemoration_n or_o figurative_a representation_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n 4._o so_o hincmarus_n who_o live_v in_o that_o age_n deliver_v his_o opinion_n which_o be_v afterward_o take_v up_o by_o berengarius_fw-la as_o appear_v by_o lanfrank_n answer_n to_o he_o and_o ascelinus_fw-la in_o his_o epistle_n to_o berengarius_fw-la show_v that_o joh._n scotus_n out_o of_o opposition_n to_o paschasius_fw-la set_v himself_o to_o prove_v from_o the_o father_n that_o what_o be_v consecrate_v on_o the_o altar_n be_v not_o true_o and_o real_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n these_o two_o opposite_a doctrine_n be_v thus_o disperse_v and_o a_o schism_n be_v likely_a to_o break_v out_o upon_o it_o as_o appear_v both_o by_o ratramnus_n and_o the_o anonymous_n author_n publish_v by_o cellotius_n and_o extant_a in_o ms_n in_o the_o cotton_n library_n carolus_n calvus_n send_v to_o ratramnus_n a_o eminent_a divine_a of_o that_o age_n be_v employ_v by_o the_o gallican_n church_n to_o defend_v the_o latin_n against_o the_o greek_n to_o know_v his_o judgement_n in_o this_o matter_n he_o who_o be_v better_o know_v by_o the_o name_n of_o bertram_n give_v in_o his_o preface_n a_o account_n to_o his_o prince_n of_o both_o these_o opinion_n and_o reject_v they_o both_o as_o against_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o father_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o his_o book_n he_o dispute_v against_o scotus_n who_o will_v allow_v no_o mystery_n and_o in_o the_o second_o against_o paschasius_fw-la who_o contend_v that_o the_o same_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o b._n virgin_n this_o he_o say_v be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o second_o question_n whether_o that_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n which_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n be_v receive_v by_o believer_n in_o the_o sacramental_a mystery_n and_o he_o prove_v the_o negative_a at_o large_a from_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n show_v that_o they_o do_v put_v a_o difference_n between_o that_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n and_o suffer_v on_o the_o cross_n and_o that_o true_a but_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n on_o the_o altar_n and_o so_o from_o the_o testimony_n of_o s._n ambrose_n s._n augustine_n s._n hierom_n fulgentius_n from_o the_o scripture_n and_o from_o the_o office_n of_o the_o church_n he_o conclude_v pointblank_o against_o paschasius_fw-la that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o same_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o b._n virgin_n but_o then_o against_o the_o opinion_n of_o scotus_n he_o deliver_v his_o mind_n full_o in_o answer_n to_o the_o first_o question_n say_v if_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o what_o appear_v to_o the_o sense_n it_o be_v unfit_o call_v a_o mystery_n and_o there_o will_v be_v no_o exercise_n for_o faith_n no_o change_n at_o all_o wrought_v in_o the_o element_n the_o sacrament_n will_v fall_v short_a of_o baptism_n and_o the_o manna_n in_o the_o wilderness_n and_o last_o to_o what_o purpose_n do_v christ_n promise_v his_o flesh_n to_o be_v the_o food_n of_o his_o people_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v carnal_o and_o literal_o must_v have_v a_o spiritual_a signification_n so_o that_o though_o as_o to_o their_o outward_a appearance_n the_o sacramental_a element_n be_v figure_n yet_o according_a to_o the_o invisible_a power_n and_o efficacy_n they_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n and_o this_o he_o show_v to_o have_v be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o father_n and_o christian_a church_n this_o opinion_n of_o ratramnus_n paschasius_fw-la in_o his_o epistle_n to_o frudegardus_fw-la call_v the_o doctrine_n of_o those_o who_o deny_v the_o presence_n of_o christ_n flesh_n in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o do_v hold_v a_o invisible_a power_n and_o efficacy_n in_o and_o with_o the_o element_n because_o say_v they_o there_o be_v no_o body_n but_o what_o be_v visible_a and_o palpable_a and_o whoever_o will_v read_v that_o epistle_n of_o paschasius_fw-la will_v find_v the_o expression_n he_o answer_v the_o very_a same_o that_o yet_o occur_v in_o the_o book_n of_o bertram_n of_o the_o same_o opinion_n with_o ratramnus_n in_o this_o matter_n be_v rabanus_n maurus_n the_o great_a divine_a account_v of_o his_o age_n who_o write_v his_o epistle_n to_o egilo_n against_o they_o who_o have_v late_o broach_v that_o doctrine_n mark_n that_o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v the_o very_a same_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o b._n virgin_n and_o suffer_v on_o the_o cross_n and_o rose_n from_o the_o dead_a and_o this_o appear_v from_o his_o epistle_n to_o heribaldus_n still_o extant_a wherein_o he_o say_v he_o declare_v in_o what_o sense_n the_o sacrament_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ._n beside_o the_o anonymus_fw-la author_n publish_v by_o cellotius_n the_o only_a person_n about_o that_o time_n who_o appear_v in_o behalf_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o paschasius_fw-la and_o very_o inconsiderable_a in_o comparison_n of_o his_o adversary_n confess_v the_o opposition_n make_v to_o paschasius_fw-la by_o rabanus_n and_o ratramnus_n and_o endeavour_n to_o excuse_v his_o simplicity_n in_o assert_v that_o the_o same_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v upon_o the_o altar_n which_o be_v
bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n by_o a_o new_a and_o extravagant_a supposition_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v the_o medium_n of_o unite_n two_o real_a body_n of_o christ_n viz._n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o of_o his_o church_n and_o therefore_o that_o must_v be_v a_o real_a body_n of_o christ_n too_o which_o be_v so_o remote_a from_o justify_v paschasius_fw-la his_o doctrine_n that_o cellotius_n himself_o be_v ashamed_a of_o he_o this_o same_o doctrine_n of_o rabanus_n and_o ratramnus_n be_v express_o own_a by_o the_o saxon_a homily_n which_o deny_v the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v a_o mere_a commemoration_n according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o joh._n erigena_n but_o say_v that_o after_o consecration_n the_o bread_n become_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n after_o a_o spiritual_a and_o mystical_a manner_n and_o in_o the_o saxon_a code_n of_o canon_n it_o be_v express_o determine_v not_o to_o be_v that_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o suffer_v on_o the_o cross._n and_o this_o i_o assert_v to_o be_v the_o very_a same_o doctrine_n which_o the_o church_n of_o england_n embrace_v upon_o the_o reformation_n as_o most_o consonant_a to_o scripture_n and_o the_o father_n which_o although_o it_o do_v declare_v against_o the_o natural_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o more_o place_n than_o one_o even_o that_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n yet_o in_o the_o article_n it_o declare_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v give_v take_v and_o eat_v so_o that_o to_o the_o faithful_a receiver_n the_o bread_n consecrate_v and_o break_v become_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o cup_n of_o blessing_n the_o communion_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ._n and_o so_o in_o the_o catechism_n it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v very_o and_o indeed_o take_v of_o the_o faithful_a in_o the_o lord_n supper_n i._n e._n that_o after_o consecration_n such_o a_o divine_a power_n and_o efficacy_n do_v accompany_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n as_o make_v the_o element_n to_o become_v the_o spiritual_a and_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o church_n be_v real_o but_o mystical_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n because_o of_o his_o spirit_n dwell_v in_o they_o so_o the_o apology_n of_o our_o church_n say_v that_o in_o the_o lord_n supper_n there_o be_v true_o exhibit_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n because_o that_o be_v the_o proper_a food_n of_o our_o soul_n as_o bread_n and_o wine_n tend_v to_o the_o nourishment_n of_o our_o bodiess_n and_o if_o the_o time_n will_v permit_v i_o can_v not_o only_o more_o large_o prove_v this_o to_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o our_o church_n but_o that_o it_o be_v the_o true_a and_o genuine_a sense_n of_o the_o father_n both_o of_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n and_o thus_o i_o hope_v i_o have_v do_v that_o which_o t._n g._n think_v so_o impossible_a a_o thing_n viz._n to_o explain_v this_o rubric_n so_o as_o not_o to_o undermine_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n assert_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n nor_o to_o leave_v nothing_o but_o pure_a zuinglianism_n in_o the_o place_n of_o it_o r._n p._n i_o be_v afraid_a of_o a_o paradox_n and_o it_o appear_v not_o without_o reason_n for_o i_o never_o meet_v with_o any_o one_o yet_o who_o explain_v the_o doctrine_n of_o bertram_n and_o the_o church_n of_o england_n after_o this_o manner_n and_o all_o that_o attempt_v it_o talk_v so_o in_o the_o cloud_n that_o transubstantiation_n itself_o do_v not_o seem_v more_o hard_a to_o understand_v but_o i_o remember_v pet._n de_fw-fr marca_n have_v prove_v that_o the_o book_n of_o bertram_n be_v the_o same_o which_o be_v write_v by_o joh._n scotus_n and_o therefore_o your_o hypothesis_n be_v utter_o overthrow_v p._n d._n i_o have_v read_v and_o consider_v that_o faint_a attempt_n of_o that_o great_a man_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v design_v for_o no_o other_o end_n but_o to_o make_v we_o believe_v that_o bertram_n book_n be_v burn_v for_o heretical_a at_o the_o synod_n of_o vercelles_n but_o if_o any_o one_o will_v impartial_o consider_v the_o book_n of_o bertram_n and_o compare_v it_o with_o the_o account_n give_v of_o the_o opinion_n of_o joh._n scotus_n by_o the_o writer_n against_o berengarius_fw-la they_o will_v find_v de_fw-fr marca_n opinion_n without_o the_o least_o colour_n of_o probability_n r._n p._n but_o card._n perron_n mauguin_n cellotius_n and_o arnaud_n all_o say_v that_z bertram_z in_o the_o first_o part_n dispute_v against_o the_o stercoranist_n who_o be_v a_o sort_n of_o heretic_n who_o hold_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n be_v passable_a corruptible_a and_o digestible_a and_o in_o all_o thing_n just_a as_o the_o bread_n appear_v to_o our_o sense_n and_o assert_v that_o all_o the_o accident_n of_o the_o bread_n be_v found_v hypostatical_o in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o to_o have_v any_o proper_a subsistence_n of_o their_o own_o p._n d._n these_o be_v a_o notable_a sort_n of_o heretic_n if_o they_o can_v be_v find_v but_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o enemy_n of_o berengarius_fw-la that_o this_o opprobrious_a name_n be_v fix_v by_o they_o on_o all_o those_o who_o assert_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n to_o remain_v after_o consecration_n and_o it_o will_v be_v very_o strange_a if_o bertram_n shall_v confute_v that_o which_o himself_o assert_v for_o he_o say_v the_o sacramental_a element_n do_v pass_v into_o the_o nourishment_n of_o our_o body_n but_o if_o any_o be_v liable_a to_o this_o accusation_n it_o must_v be_v paschasius_fw-la if_o pet._n de_fw-fr marca_n observation_n of_o he_o be_v true_a that_o he_o hold_v both_o substance_n and_o quantity_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o be_v turn_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n from_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o must_v be_v the_o subject_n of_o all_o those_o accident_n which_o be_v in_o the_o bread_n before_o which_o be_v the_o very_a sink_n of_o stercoranism_n nay_o i_o be_o very_o much_o deceive_v if_o pope_n nicholas_n 2._o in_o the_o recantation_n prescribe_v to_o berengarius_fw-la do_v not_o fall_v into_o the_o filth_n of_o it_o far_o more_o than_o rabanus_n or_o heribaldus_n for_o he_o assert_n therein_o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v true_o and_o sensible_o handle_v and_o break_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o priest_n and_o ground_n by_o the_o tooth_n of_o believer_n but_o what_o place_n can_v be_v fit_a for_o this_o heresy_n than_o the_o sedes_fw-la stercoraria_fw-la 1._o and_o guitmundus_n strive_v to_o help_v pope_n nicholas_n and_o his_o council_n out_o fall_v into_o the_o same_o heresy_n himself_o for_o he_o show_v that_o christ_n body_n may_v be_v handle_v and_o chew_v in_o the_o sacrament_n if_o so_o it_o must_v be_v the_o subject_n of_o the_o accident_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o according_a to_o perron_n and_o his_o follower_n be_v plain_a stercoranism_n r._n p._n but_o do_v not_o you_o fall_v into_o another_o heresy_n viz._n of_o impanation_n p._n d._n a_o man_n have_v need_n look_v to_o his_o word_n when_o heresy_n be_v so_o common_a and_o buzz_v so_o about_o a_o man_n ear_n and_o some_o think_v they_o confute_v a_o man_n with_o a_o vengeance_n if_o they_o can_v find_v out_o some_o heresy_n with_o a_o hard_a name_n to_o fasten_v upon_o he_o but_o if_o you_o do_v know_v wherein_o the_o heresy_n of_o impanation_n lay_v you_o will_v never_o charge_v this_o doctrine_n of_o our_o church_n with_o it_o for_o i_o find_v two_o distinct_a way_n of_o impanation_n and_o this_o doctrine_n be_v liable_a to_o neither_o of_o they_o 1._o by_o union_n of_o the_o bread_n to_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o by_o that_o to_o the_o divinity_n which_o be_v the_o way_n of_o joh._n parisiensis_fw-la 2._o by_o a_o immediate_a conjunction_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n to_o the_o bread_n not_o mere_o by_o divine_a efficacy_n and_o power_n but_o by_o a_o hypostatical_a union_n which_o be_v the_o opinion_n not_o without_o ground_n attribute_v to_o rupertus_n tuitiensis_n and_o be_v liable_a to_o this_o great_a absurdity_n that_o all_o that_o befall_v the_o bread_n may_v be_v attribute_v to_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n which_o bellarmine_n say_v it_o be_v blasphemy_n to_o imagine_v and_o then_o it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v god_n that_o the_o word_n be_v make_v bread_n and_o that_o god_n be_v both_o bread_n and_o wine_n but_o all_o which_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o church_n imply_v be_v only_a a_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n invisible_a power_n and_o grace_n so_o in_o and_o with_o the_o element_n as_o by_o the_o faithful_a receive_n of_o they_o to_o convey_v spiritual_a and_o real_a effect_n to_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n as_o the_o body_n assume_v by_o angel_n may_v be_v call_v their_o body_n while_o they_o assume_v they_o or_o rather_o as_o the_o
christian_a trust_n his_o soul_n with_o that_o church_n which_o teach_v that_o which_o must_v needs_o be_v idolatry_n in_o all_o that_o understand_v not_o the_o figure_n 13._o there_o be_v neither_o scripture_n nor_o tradition_n for_o worship_v the_o cross_n the_o image_n and_o relic_n of_o saint_n therefore_o it_o evidence_n the_o same_o carnal_a hope_n that_o god_n will_v abate_v of_o his_o gospel_n for_o such_o bribe_n which_o be_v the_o will-worship_n of_o mass_n pilgrimage_n and_o indulgence_n to_o that_o purpose_n 14._o neither_o scripture_n nor_o tradition_n be_v there_o for_o the_o remove_n any_o soul_n out_o of_o purgatory_n unto_o the_o beatifical_a vision_n before_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n therefore_o the_o same_o carnal_a hope_n be_v see_v in_o the_o will-worship_n of_o mass_n indulgence_n pilgrimage_n and_o the_o like_a for_o that_o purpose_n and_o that_o destructive_a to_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o that_o believe_v that_o the_o guilt_n of_o their_o sin_n be_v take_v away_o by_o submit_v to_o the_o key_n before_o they_o be_v contrite_a and_o the_o temporal_a penalty_n remain_v in_o purgatory_n pay_v by_o these_o will-worship_n 15._o both_o scripture_n and_o tradition_n condemn_v the_o depose_n of_o prince_n and_o acquit_v their_o subject_n of_o their_o allegiance_n and_o enjoin_v they_o to_o take_v arm_n for_o they_o who_o the_o pope_n substitute_n and_o this_o doctrine_n be_v not_o only_o false_a but_o in_o my_o opinion_n proper_o heresy_n yet_o practise_v by_o so_o many_o pope_n the_o church_n may_v be_v divide_v that_o salvation_n may_v be_v have_v on_o both_o side_n instance_n the_o schism_n of_o the_o pope_n the_o schism_n of_o acacius_n the_o schism_n between_o the_o greek_n and_o the_o latin_n i_o hold_v the_o schism_n for_o the_o reformation_n to_o be_v of_o this_o kind_n but_o i_o do_v not_o allow_v salvation_n to_o any_o that_o shall_v change_v have_v these_o reason_n before_o he_o though_o i_o allow_v the_o reformation_n not_o to_o be_v perfect_a in_o some_o point_n of_o less_o moment_n as_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o other_o remember_v always_o that_o the_o popish_a church_n of_o england_n can_v never_o be_v canonical_o govern_v be_v immediate_o under_o the_o pope_n 16._o there_o be_v both_o scripture_n and_o tradition_n for_o the_o scripture_n and_o service_n in_o a_o know_a tongue_n and_o for_o the_o eucharist_n in_o both_o kind_n how_o then_o can_v any_o christian_a trust_n his_o soul_n with_o that_o church_n which_o have_v the_o conscience_n to_o bar_v he_o of_o such_o help_v provide_v by_o god_n these_o be_v all_o his_o own_o word_n without_o addition_n or_o alteration_n and_o what_o think_v you_o now_o of_o mr._n thorndike_n be_v this_o man_n a_o secret_a friend_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v you_o think_v who_o say_v so_o plain_o that_o a_o man_n can_v embrace_v the_o communion_n of_o that_o church_n without_o hazard_n of_o his_o salvation_n r._n p._n i_o do_v little_o think_v by_o the_o use_n t._n g._n on_o all_o occasion_n make_v of_o he_o that_o he_o have_v be_v a_o man_n of_o such_o principle_n but_o i_o think_v t._n g._n have_v as_o good_a have_v let_v he_o alone_o as_o have_v give_v occasion_n for_o produce_v such_o testimony_n of_o the_o thought_n which_o a_o man_n of_o his_o learning_n and_o fame_n have_v concern_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n however_o you_o see_v he_o hold_v the_o presence_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n and_o can_v you_o reconcile_v this_o to_o what_o you_o assert_v to_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n p._n d._n yes_o very_o well_o if_o you_o compare_v what_o he_o say_v here_o with_o what_o he_o declare_v more_o at_o large_a in_o his_o book_n wherein_o you_o may_v read_v these_o remarkable_a word_n to_o this_o purpose_n 30._o if_o it_o can_v any_o way_n be_v show_v that_o the_o church_n do_v ever_o pray_v that_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n may_v be_v substitute_v instead_o of_o the_o element_n under_o the_o accident_n of_o they_o than_o i_o be_o content_a that_o this_o be_v account_v henceforth_o the_o sacramental_a presence_n of_o they_o in_o the_o eucharist_n but_o if_o the_o church_n only_o pray_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n come_v down_o upon_o the_o element_n may_v make_v they_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n so_o that_o they_o which_o receive_v they_o may_v be_v fill_v with_o the_o grace_n of_o his_o spirit_n then_o be_v it_o not_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n that_o can_v oblige_v any_o man_n to_o believe_v the_o abolish_n of_o the_o element_n in_o their_o bodily_a substance_n because_o suppose_v that_o they_o remain_v they_o may_v nevertheless_o come_v to_o be_v the_o instrument_n of_o god_n spirit_n to_o convey_v the_o operation_n thereof_o to_o they_o that_o be_v dispose_v to_o receive_v it_o no_o otherwise_o than_o his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n convey_v the_o efficacy_n thereof_o upon_o earth_n and_o that_o i_o suppose_v be_v reason_n enough_o to_o call_v it_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n sacramental_o that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n and_o in_o two_o or_o three_o place_n more_o he_o speak_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n r._n p._n hold_v sir_n i_o beseech_v you_o you_o have_v say_v enough_o you_o will_v fall_v back_o again_o to_o transubstantiation_n in_o spite_n of_o my_o heart_n p._n d._n what_o when_o i_o only_o answer_v a_o question_n you_o ask_v i_o r._n p._n enough_o of_o mr._n thorndike_n unless_o he_o be_v more_o our_o friend_n than_o i_o find_v he_o be_v i_o pray_v what_o say_v you_o to_o archbishop_n whitgift_n p._n d._n have_v t._n g._n persuade_v you_o that_o he_o be_v turn_v puritan_n above_o seventy_o year_n after_o his_o death_n who_o never_o be_v suspect_v for_o it_o while_o he_o be_v live_v nor_o since_o till_o the_o transform_a day_n of_o t._n g._n r._n p._n you_o may_v jeer_v as_o you_o please_v but_o t._n g._n tell_v a_o notable_a story_n of_o the_o lambeth_n article_n etc._n and_o how_o q._n elizabeth_n black_a husband_n be_v like_a to_o have_v be_v divorce_v from_o she_o upon_o they_o and_o how_o k._n james_n will_v not_o receive_v they_o into_o the_o article_n of_o the_o church_n and_o all_o this_o as_o well_o as_o many_o other_o good_a thing_n he_o have_v out_o of_o one_o pet._n heylin_n be_v the_o man_n alive_a i_o pray_v that_o we_o may_v give_v he_o our_o due_a thanks_o for_o the_o service_n he_o have_v do_v we_o upon_o many_o occasion_n for_o we_o have_v write_v whole_a book_n against_o the_o reformation_n out_o of_o his_o history_n of_o it_o and_o i_o find_v t._n g._n rely_v as_o much_o upon_o he_o as_o other_o good_a catholic_n do_v on_o cochlaeus_fw-la and_o surius_n or_o as_o he_o do_v at_o other_o time_n on_o the_o patronus_fw-la bonae_fw-la fidei_fw-la p._n d._n dr._n heylin_n be_v a_o man_n of_o very_o good_a part_n and_o learning_n and_o who_o do_v write_v history_n pleasant_o enough_o but_o in_o some_o thing_n he_o be_v too_o much_o a_o party_n to_o be_v a_o historian_n and_o be_v deep_o concern_v in_o some_o quarrel_n himself_o all_o his_o historical_a write_n about_o our_o church_n do_v plain_o discover_v which_o side_n he_o espouse_v which_o to_o i_o do_v not_o seem_v to_o agree_v with_o the_o impartiality_n of_o a_o historian_n and_o if_o he_o can_v but_o throw_v dirt_n on_o that_o which_o he_o account_v the_o puritan_n party_n from_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o reformation_n he_o matter_a not_o though_o the_o whole_a reformation_n suffer_v by_o it_o but_o for_o all_o this_o he_o be_v far_o from_o be_v a_o friend_n either_o to_o the_o church_n or_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o next_o to_o puritanism_n i_o believe_v he_o hate_v popery_n most_o so_o that_o if_o he_o have_v be_v alive_a and_o you_o have_v go_v to_o thank_v he_o for_o the_o service_n he_o have_v do_v you_o in_o all_o probability_n you_o have_v provoke_v he_o to_o have_v write_v as_o sharp_o against_o you_o as_o ever_o he_o write_v against_o the_o puritan_n but_o what_o be_v all_o this_o to_o archbishop_n whitgift_n be_v suspect_v for_o a_o puritan_n dare_v pet._n heylin_n suggest_v any_o such_o thing_n no_o he_o know_v he_o too_o well_o and_o say_v 62._o that_o by_o his_o contrivance_n the_o puritan_n faction_n be_v so_o muzzle_v that_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o bark_v in_o a_o long_a time_n after_o have_v he_o then_o any_o suspicion_n of_o his_o be_v puritanical_o incline_v and_o as_o to_o the_o lambeth_n article_n they_o only_o prove_v that_o he_o hold_v those_o opinion_n contain_v in_o they_o and_o recommend_v they_o to_o the_o university_n to_o suppress_v the_o dispute_n which_o have_v be_v there_o raise_v concern_v they_o and_o what_o then_o do_v this_o render_v he_o
order_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n it_o be_v enough_o to_o make_v thing_n lawful_a if_o they_o be_v not_o forbid_v let_v we_o now_o compare_v this_o say_n with_o what_o he_o call_v the_o fundamental_a principle_n of_o separation_n that_o nothing_o be_v lawful_a in_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n but_o what_o he_o have_v express_o command_v and_o can_v any_o thing_n be_v more_o contradictory_n to_o this_o than_o what_o dr._n st._n lay_v down_o as_o a_o principle_n in_o that_o very_a page_n of_o his_o irenicum_fw-la that_o a_o express_v positive_a command_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o make_v a_o thing_n lawful_a but_o a_o non-prohibition_n by_o a_o law_n be_v sufficient_a for_o that_o where_o then_o lie_v t._n g.'s_n understanding_n or_o ingenuity_n when_o he_o mention_n such_o a_o great_a change_n in_o the_o dr._n as_o to_o this_o principle_n when_o he_o own_v the_o very_a same_o principle_n even_o in_o that_o book_n and_o that_o very_a page_n he_o quote_v to_o the_o contrary_a t._n g._n do_v presume_v good_a catholic_n reader_n will_v take_v his_o word_n without_o look_v far_o and_o i_o scarce_o ever_o know_v a_o writer_n who_o stand_v more_o in_o need_n of_o the_o good_a opinion_n of_o his_o reader_n in_o this_o kind_n than_o t._n g._n do_v as_o i_o shall_v make_v it_o full_o appear_v if_o you_o hold_v on_o this_o discourse_n with_o i_o for_o i_o have_v take_v some_o pain_n to_o consider_v t._n g.'s_n manner_n of_o deal_n with_o his_o adversary_n but_o this_o be_v too_o gross_a a_o way_n of_o impose_v upon_o the_o credulity_n of_o reader_n yet_o this_o be_v their_o common_a method_n of_o deal_n with_o dr._n st._n when_o they_o intend_v to_o write_v against_o he_o then_o have_v you_o dr._n st._n be_v irenicum_fw-la hope_v to_o find_v matter_n there_o to_o expose_v he_o to_o the_o hatred_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o to_o represent_v he_o as_o unfit_a to_o defend_v the_o church_n of_o england_n if_o this_o take_v not_o than_o they_o pick_v sentence_n and_o half-sentence_n from_o the_o series_n of_o the_o discourse_n and_o lay_v these_o together_o cry_z look_v you_o here_o be_v this_o a_o man_n fit_a to_o defend_v your_o church_n that_o so_o contradict_v himself_o thus_o and_o thus_o when_o any_o common_a understanding_n by_o compare_v the_o place_n will_v find_v they_o either_o false_o represent_v or_o easy_o reconcile_v in_o truth_n sir_n i_o think_v you_o have_v show_v as_o little_a learning_n or_o skill_n or_o ingenuity_n in_o answer_v he_o as_o any_o one_o adversary_n that_o ever_o appear_v against_o your_o church_n and_o especial_o when_o t._n g._n go_v about_o to_o prove_v that_o he_o contradict_v himself_o or_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n r._n p._n but_o i_o pray_v tell_v i_o if_o this_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n why_o the_o article_n of_o the_o church_n do_v only_o reject_v the_o romish_a doctrine_n concern_v worship_v and_o adoration_n of_o image_n not_o as_o idolatry_n but_o as_o a_o fond_a thing_n vain_o invent_v and_o ground_v upon_o no_o warranty_n of_o scripture_n but_o rather_o repugnant_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o etc._n i_o perceive_v this_o stick_n much_o with_o t._n g._n and_o from_o hence_o he_o conclude_v dr._n st._n to_o contradict_v the_o sense_n of_o it_o 63._o who_o be_v the_o champion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n p._n d._n i_o perceive_v t._n g._n keep_v this_o for_o a_o part_a blow_n after_o which_o he_o think_v fit_a to_o breathe_v a_o while_n have_v spend_v so_o many_o spirit_n in_o this_o encounter_n but_o methinks_v his_o arm_n grow_v feeble_a and_o although_o his_o fury_n be_v as_o great_a as_o ever_o yet_o his_o strength_n be_v decay_v and_o in_o my_o mind_n it_o do_v not_o become_v a_o man_n of_o his_o chivalry_n so_o often_o to_o leave_v his_o lance_n and_o to_o run_v with_o open_a mouth_n upon_o his_o adversary_n and_o to_o bite_v till_o his_o tooth_n meet_v for_o what_o mean_v the_o unhandsome_a reflection_n he_o make_v on_o all_o occasion_n 52._o upon_o his_o be_v the_o champion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v cause_n to_o be_v ashamed_a of_o such_o a_o champion_n 162._o and_o of_o his_o put_v he_o in_o mind_n of_o his_o duty_n as_o the_o champion_n of_o the_o church_n not_o to_o betray_v the_o church_n he_o pretend_v to_o defend_v where_o do_v he_o ever_o assume_v any_o such_o title_n to_o himself_o or_o ever_o enter_v the_o list_n but_o on_o the_o account_n of_o obedience_n or_o upon_o great_a provocation_n the_o name_n of_o champion_n savour_v too_o much_o of_o vanity_n and_o ostentation_n whereas_o he_o only_o show_v how_o easy_o the_o cause_n can_v be_v defend_v when_o his_o superior_n first_o command_v such_o a_o stripling_n as_o he_o then_o be_v to_o undertake_v the_o defence_n of_o it_o but_o i_o shall_v set_v aside_o these_o reflection_n and_o come_v to_o the_o point_n of_o our_o article_n and_o therein_o consider_v 1._o what_o t._n g._n object_n 2._o what_o dr._n st._n answer_v 3._o which_o way_n the_o sense_n of_o the_o article_n be_v to_o be_v interpret_v t._n g._n look_n upon_o it_o as_o a_o notable_a observation_n that_o the_o compiler_n of_o the_o 39_o article_n in_o which_o be_v contain_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n sufficient_o insinuate_v that_o they_o can_v find_v no_o such_o command_n forbid_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n when_o they_o reject_v the_o adoration_n of_o image_n not_o as_o idolatry_n but_o only_o as_o a_o fond_a thing_n vain_o invent_v nor_o as_o repugnant_a to_o the_o plain_a word_n of_o scripture_n but_o as_o rather_o repugnant_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o qualification_n of_o they_o give_v we_o plain_o to_o understand_v that_o they_o have_v do_v their_o endeavour_n to_o find_v such_o a_o command_n but_o can_v meet_v with_o none_o to_o which_o dr._n st._n give_v this_o answer_n that_o the_o force_n of_o all_o he_o say_v lie_n upon_o the_o word_n of_o the_o english_a translation_n whereas_o if_o he_o have_v look_v on_o the_o latin_a wherein_o they_o give_v account_n of_o their_o doctrine_n to_o foreign_a church_n this_o criticism_n have_v be_v lose_v the_o word_n be_v immo_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la contradicit_fw-la whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o rather_o be_v not_o use_v as_o a_o term_n of_o diminution_n but_o of_o a_o more_o vehement_a affirmation_n and_o what_o say_v t._n g._n i_o pray_v to_o this_o r._n p._n t._n g._n repeat_v his_o own_o word_n at_o large_a 61._o and_o then_o blame_v the_o compiler_n of_o the_o article_n for_o want_n of_o grammar_n if_o they_o intend_v the_o word_n rather_o to_o affect_v the_o word_n that_o follow_v p._n d._n but_o what_o be_v all_o this_o to_o the_o latin_a article_n which_o dr._n st._n appeal_v to_o for_o explication_n of_o the_o english_a and_o for_o the_o love_n of_o grammar_n let_v t._n g._n tell_v we_o whether_o there_o be_v not_o a_o more_o vehement_a affirmation_n in_o those_o word_n immo_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la contradicit_fw-la either_o t._n g._n shall_v never_o have_v mention_v this_o more_o or_o have_v say_v something_o more_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o do_v he_o think_v our_o bishop_n and_o clergy_n be_v not_o careful_a that_o their_o true_a sense_n be_v set_v forth_o in_o the_o latin_a article_n and_o their_o sense_n be_v so_o peremptory_a herein_o and_o contrary_a to_o t.g._n be_v there_o not_o all_o the_o reason_n in_o the_o world_n to_o explain_v the_o english_a article_n by_o the_o latin_a since_o we_o be_v sure_o they_o have_v not_o two_o meaning_n this_o be_v so_o plain_a i_o be_o ashamed_a to_o say_v a_o word_n more_o to_o it_o r._n p._n but_o t._n g._n be_v very_o pleasant_a in_o describe_v the_o argument_n dr._n st._n bring_v to_o prove_v the_o article_n to_o make_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n idolatry_n because_o it_o be_v call_v adoration_n of_o image_n and_o say_v to_o be_v the_o romish_a doctrine_n about_o adoration_n but_o after_o the_o cat_n have_v play_v with_o the_o mouse_n as_o long_o as_o he_o think_v fit_a leap_v and_o frisk_v with_o he_o in_o his_o claw_n at_o last_o he_o fall_v on_o he_o with_o his_o tooth_n and_o hardly_o leave_v a_o bone_n behind_o he_o 54._o after_o he_o have_v muster_v his_o argument_n and_o draw_v they_o out_o in_o rank_n and_o file_n and_o make_v one_o charge_n upon_o another_o for_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o reader_n he_o than_o give_v he_o a_o plain_a and_o solid_a answer_n 56._o viz._n by_o the_o word_n romish_a doctrine_n concern_v adoration_n of_o image_n may_v be_v understand_v either_o the_o doctrine_n teach_v in_o her_o school_n which_o be_v but_o the_o opinion_n of_o particular_a person_n no_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o follow_v or_o
the_o doctrine_n teach_v in_o her_o council_n which_o all_o those_o of_o her_o communion_n be_v bind_v to_o submit_v to_o if_o the_o doctrine_n which_o the_o church_n of_o england_n charge_v be_v that_o which_o be_v teach_v by_o some_o of_o her_o school_n divine_v which_o he_o take_v to_o be_v her_o true_a meaning_n this_o be_v also_o deny_v at_o least_o by_o those_o very_a divine_n who_o teach_v it_o to_o be_v idolatry_n if_o by_o the_o romish_a doctrine_n be_v mean_v the_o doctrine_n of_o council_n own_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n concern_v worship_v and_o adoration_n of_o image_n than_o herein_o she_o be_v vindicate_v from_o idolatry_n by_o eminent_a divine_n that_o have_v be_v esteem_v true_a and_o genuine_a son_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n p._n d._n and_o do_v this_o mighty_a effort_n come_v to_o this_o at_o last_o what_o pity_v it_o be_v t._n g._n have_v no_o better_o a_o cause_n he_o set_v this_o off_o so_o pretty_o and_o dazzle_v the_o eye_n of_o his_o beholder_n with_o the_o dust_n he_o raise_v so_o that_o those_o who_o do_v not_o narrow_o look_v into_o his_o feat_n of_o activity_n will_v imagine_v he_o still_o stand_v when_o he_o be_v only_o endeavour_v to_o recover_v a_o fall_n for_o 1._o by_o adoration_n of_o image_n our_o church_n do_v not_o mean_a that_o which_o their_o school_n divine_v call_v adoration_n of_o image_n as_o they_o distinguish_v it_o from_o veneration_n of_o they_o but_o it_o mean_v all_o that_o religious_a worship_n which_o by_o the_o allow_a doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v give_v to_o image_n and_o this_o be_v just_a the_o case_n of_o the_o council_n of_o francford_n concern_v which_o i_o hear_v t._n g._n say_v not_o one_o word_n in_o his_o last_o book_n and_o i_o commend_v he_o for_o it_o the_o western_a bishop_n condemn_v adoration_n of_o image_n very_o true_a say_v t._n g._n and_o his_o brethren_n but_o all_o this_o be_v a_o bare_a mistake_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n which_o never_o approve_a adoration_n of_o image_n but_o only_o a_o inferior_a worship_n but_o dr._n st._n have_v show_v that_o the_o francford_n council_n know_v of_o this_o distinction_n well_o enough_o and_o notwithstanding_o their_o deny_v it_o the_o western_a church_n do_v not_o judge_v that_o the_o worship_n which_o they_o give_v to_o image_n be_v real_o adoration_n whether_o they_o call_v it_o so_o or_o not_o just_o so_o it_o be_v with_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o reference_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n this_o distinguish_v adoration_n from_o inferior_a worship_n but_o our_o church_n own_v no_o such_o distinction_n and_o call_v that_o religious_a worship_n which_o they_o give_v to_o image_n adoration_n and_o suppose_v it_o be_v real_o so_o dr._n st._n say_v their_o own_o divine_n yield_v it_o to_o be_v idolatry_n i._n e._n the_o church_n of_o england_n call_v their_o worship_n of_o image_n adoration_n or_o give_v divine_a worship_n to_o a_o creature_n but_o their_o divine_n do_v yield_v this_o be_v idolatry_n and_o therefore_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v charge_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n with_o idolatry_n but_o how_o subtle_o have_v t._n g._n alter_v the_o whole_a force_n of_o the_o argument_n by_o take_v adoration_n not_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o our_o church_n but_o of_o their_o school-divines_a and_o then_o tell_v we_o that_o even_o those_o school-divines_a who_o teach_v adoration_n of_o image_n deny_v it_o to_o be_v idolatry_n and_o whoever_o expect_v they_o shall_v confess_v themselves_o guilty_a but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n where_o do_v it_o allow_v such_o a_o distinction_n of_o divine_a worship_n into_o that_o which_o be_v superior_a and_o inferior_a or_o that_o which_o be_v proper_a to_o god_n and_o that_o which_o be_v not_o 2._o by_o romish_a doctrine_n the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v not_o mean_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o school-divines_a but_o the_o doctrine_n receive_v and_o allow_v in_o that_o church_n from_o whence_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n be_v require_v and_o practise_v such_o kind_n of_o worship_n i_o mean_v as_o be_v justify_v and_o defend_v in_o common_a among_o they_o without_o their_o school-distinction_n such_o worship_n as_o be_v require_v here_o in_o the_o recantation_n of_o the_o lollard_n as_o dr._n st._n observe_v 581._o i_o do_v swear_v to_o god_n and_o all_o his_o seynt_n upon_o this_o holy_a gospel_n that_o fro_o this_o day_n forward_o i_o shall_v worship_v image_n with_o pray_v and_o offer_v unto_o they_o in_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o seynt_n that_o they_o be_v make_v after_o such_o worship_n as_o be_v require_v here_o by_o the_o constitution_n of_o arundel_n a._n d._n 1408._o with_o procession_n genuflection_n thurification_n deosculation_n oblation_n burn_n of_o light_n and_o pilgrimage_n which_o be_v call_v act_n of_o adoration_n and_o this_o constitution_n be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o canon_n law_n of_o england_n which_o all_o person_n be_v then_o bind_v to_o observe_v or_o else_o may_v be_v proceed_v against_o as_o lollard_n and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o dr._n st._n insist_o upon_o be_v the_o thing_n condemn_v by_o the_o article_n of_o our_o church_n viz._n the_o worship_n of_o image_n which_o be_v require_v and_o practise_v here_o in_o england_n and_o what_o reason_n have_v we_o to_o run_v to_o school-divines_a for_o the_o sense_n of_o matter_n of_o daily_a practice_n as_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n be_v before_o the_o reformation_n and_o so_o i_o conclude_v if_o this_o be_v all_o t._n g._n in_o so_o long_a time_n have_v have_v to_o say_v about_o this_o matter_n viz._n above_o four_o year_n since_o dr._n st.'s_n general_n preface_n be_v publish_v he_o have_v very_o unreasonable_o charge_v he_o with_o dissent_v from_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o this_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n f._n c._n i_o hope_v you_o have_v do_v for_o this_o time_n and_o if_o you_o catch_v i_o again_o lose_v so_o much_o time_n in_o hear_v fend_n and_o prove_v about_o the_o church_n of_o england_n i_o will_v give_v you_o leave_v to_o call_v i_o fanatic_a if_o you_o have_v any_o thing_n more_o of_o this_o kind_n talk_v it_o out_o yourselves_o if_o you_o please_v i_o expect_v to_o have_v have_v some_o comfortable_a talk_n with_o my_o old_a friend_n about_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n and_o how_o many_o precious_a hour_n have_v you_o lose_v about_o the_o church_n of_o england_n this_o will_v never_o do_v our_o business_n if_o you_o please_v my_o good_a friend_n you_o and_o i_o will_v meet_v in_o private_a at_o such_o a_o place_n to_o morrow_n p._n d._n nay_o sir_n let_v i_o not_o be_v exclude_v your_o company_n since_o i_o be_o so_o accidental_o fall_v into_o it_o and_o have_v but_o patience_n to_o hear_v we_o talk_v out_o these_o matter_n since_o we_o have_v begin_v they_o for_o i_o hear_v your_o friend_n friend_n t._n g._n have_v say_v some_o thing_n wherein_o your_o cause_n be_v concern_v f._n c._n i_o do_v intend_v for_o the_o auction_n again_o to_o morrow_n and_o if_o i_o can_v easy_o get_v the_o book_n i_o look_v for_o i_o will_v bear_v you_o company_n otherwise_o go_v on_o with_o your_o discourse_n and_o i_o will_v come_v to_o you_o when_o i_o have_v make_v my_o adventure_n it_o be_v possible_a i_o may_v meet_v with_o some_o of_o they_o to_o night_n for_o i_o hear_v they_o at_o rutherford_n and_o gillespee_n and_o our_o divinity_n follow_v just_a after_o the_o scotch_a which_o be_v well_o observe_v by_o the_o catalogue-maker_n for_o the_o covenant_n bind_v we_o to_o reform_v according_a to_o the_o pattern_n of_o the_o church_n of_o scotland_n r._n p._n you_o intend_v then_o to_o meet_v here_o again_o to_o morrow_n at_o three_o of_o clock_n to_o pursue_v our_o conference_n about_o these_o matter_n i_o will_v not_o fail_v you_o and_o so_o adieu_n the_o end_n of_o the_o first_o conference_n the_o second_o conference_n about_o the_o consequence_n of_o the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n p._n d._n how_o long_o have_v you_o be_v at_o the_o auction_n r._n p._n above_o a_o hour_n for_o i_o have_v a_o great_a desire_n to_o see_v how_o the_o book_n be_v sell_v at_o they_o p._n d._n and_o i_o pray_v what_o do_v you_o observe_v concern_v the_o buy_n of_o book_n here_o r._n p._n i_o find_v it_o a_o pretty_a humoursome_a thing_n and_o sometime_o man_n give_v great_a rate_n for_o book_n than_o they_o may_v buy_v they_o for_o in_o the_o shop_n and_o yet_o general_o book_n be_v sell_v dear_a here_o than_o in_o any_o part_n of_o europe_n p._n d._n what_o reason_n can_v you_o give_v for_o that_o r._n p._n one_o be_v that_o the_o scholar_n of_o england_n allow_v themselves_o great_a liberty_n in_o learning_n than_o they_o do_v in_o foreign_a part_n where_o common_o only_a one_o kind_n of_o
proposal_n he_o make_v about_o temper_v episcopacy_n they_o be_v no_o other_o than_o what_o king_n charles_n 1._o and_o mr._n thorndike_n have_v make_v before_o he_o and_o do_v t._n g._n think_v they_o design_v to_o ruin_v the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o as_o long_o as_o he_o declare_v this_o to_o be_v the_o design_n of_o his_o book_n both_o at_o the_o beginning_n and_o conclusion_n of_o it_o suppose_v he_o be_v mistake_v in_o the_o mean_v he_o take_v must_v such_o a_o man_n be_v present_o condemn_v as_o one_o that_o aim_v at_o the_o ruin_n and_o destruction_n of_o the_o church_n r._n p._n but_o t._n g._n say_v he_o tender_v it_o to_o consideration_n after_o episcopacy_n be_v resettled_a by_o law_n p._n d._n that_o be_v as_o true_a as_o other_o of_o his_o suggestion_n the_o book_n be_v print_v while_o thing_n be_v unsettle_a and_o be_v intend_v to_o remove_v the_o violent_a prejudices_fw-la of_o the_o dissent_v party_n against_o episcopal_a government_n and_o i_o have_v hear_v do_v considerable_a service_n that_o way_n at_o least_o in_o a_o neighbour_n kingdom_n and_o it_o happen_v to_o be_v reprint_v afterward_o with_o the_o same_o title_n it_o have_v before_o but_o what_o then_o do_v not_o bookseller_n look_v on_o book_n as_o their_o own_o and_o do_v what_o they_o please_v with_o they_o without_o the_o author_n consent_n or_o approbation_n have_v he_o ever_o preach_v or_o write_v any_o doctrine_n since_o contrary_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v he_o make_v any_o party_n or_o faction_n to_o the_o disturbance_n of_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n have_v he_o not_o conform_v to_o its_o rule_n observe_v its_o office_n obey_v his_o superior_n and_o be_v ready_a to_o defend_v its_o cause_n against_o adversary_n of_o all_o sort_n and_o can_v malice_n itself_o after_o all_o this_o fasten_v such_o a_o calumny_n upon_o he_o that_o he_o be_v a_o secret_a enemy_n to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o design_n to_o ruin_n and_o destroy_v it_o i_o remember_v a_o poor_a englishman_n in_o amboyna_n be_v cruel_o torment_v by_o the_o dutch_a and_o find_v nothing_o he_o can_v say_v will_v persuade_v his_o tormentor_n to_o release_v he_o and_o he_o say_v any_o thing_n that_o he_o think_v will_v prevail_v with_o they_o at_o last_o he_o pray_v god_n that_o he_o may_v tell_v they_o probable_a lie_n i_o will_v advise_v t._n g._n the_o next_o time_n he_o go_v a_o mole-catching_a to_o find_v out_o probable_a plot_n otherwise_o he_o will_v lose_v all_o the_o reputation_n of_o a_o informer_n and_o discoverer_n but_o i_o can_v hardly_o tell_v whether_o his_o plot_n or_o his_o proof_n be_v the_o worse_o for_o as_o there_o appear_v no_o likelihood_n in_o the_o plot_n so_o there_o be_v no_o evidence_n in_o the_o proof_n there_o be_v nothing_o pretend_v since_o the_o irenicum_fw-la but_o this_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n and_o that_o have_v be_v sufficient_o clear_v already_o by_o show_v that_o it_o do_v not_o subvert_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n r._n p._n let_v we_o now_o if_o you_o please_v proceed_v to_o the_o other_o dangerous_a consequence_n of_o this_o charge_n as_o they_o be_v muster_v up_o by_o t._n g._n one_o be_v that_o it_o overthrow_v the_o article_n of_o the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n p._n d._n that_o be_v something_o indeed_o what_o do_v it_o take_v away_o a_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n nay_o then_o it_o be_v time_n to_o look_v about_o we_o but_o how_o i_o pray_v r._n p._n i_o will_v tell_v you_o how_o if_o the_o church_n have_v be_v guilty_a of_o idolatry_n 1._o then_o she_o have_v require_v and_o enjoin_v idolatry_n 67._o for_o many_o hundred_o of_o year_n parallel_v to_o the_o heathen_n 2._o then_o mahomet_n have_v more_o wisdom_n and_o power_n to_o carry_v on_o his_o design_n than_o the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o his_o follower_n have_v be_v preserve_v from_o it_o by_o the_o ground_n he_o lay_v above_o a_o thousand_o year_n 3._o then_o our_o forefather_n have_v better_o be_v convert_v to_o judaisme_n or_o turcism_n than_o to_o christianity_n as_o they_o be_v p._n d._n i_o deny_v every_o one_o of_o these_o consequence_n for_o our_o present_a dispute_n be_v only_o about_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v guilty_a of_o idolatry_n and_o from_o thence_o 1_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o the_o whole_a christian_a church_n must_v require_v idolatry_n if_o that_o do_v unless_o t._n g._n have_v prove_v that_o all_o other_o church_n be_v equal_o involve_v in_o the_o same_o guilt_n which_o he_o never_o attempt_v 2._o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o mahomet_n be_v wise_a than_o christ_n for_o if_o you_o compare_v the_o ground_n lay_v for_o divine_a worship_n by_o christ_n and_o mahomet_n i_o say_v that_o christ_n do_v show_v infinite_o more_o wisdom_n in_o they_o than_o so_o vile_a a_o impostor_n and_o it_o be_v a_o shame_n for_o any_o christian_n to_o suggest_v the_o contrary_a but_o if_o t._n g._n speak_v of_o power_n to_o carry_v on_o his_o design_n than_o it_o must_v suppose_v that_o mahomet_n power_n have_v preserve_v the_o mahometan_a religion_n so_o long_o free_a from_o idolatry_n although_o christ_n have_v not_o which_o must_v imply_v the_o greatness_n of_o mahomet_n power_n in_o heaven_n and_o so_o it_o border_n upon_o blasphemy_n 3._o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o our_o forefather_n have_v better_o be_v convert_v to_o judaisme_n or_o turcism_n than_o to_o christianity_n for_o they_o have_v incomparable_o great_a advantage_n towards_o their_o salvation_n than_o either_o turk_n or_o pagan_n and_o such_o circumstance_n may_v accompany_v their_o practice_n of_o idolatry_n as_o may_v make_v it_o not_o to_o hinder_v their_o salvation_n but_o i_o shall_v give_v you_o a_o full_a answer_n to_o this_o in_o the_o word_n of_o bishop_n sanderson_n who_o be_v another_o competent_a witness_n if_o any_o more_o be_v needful_a that_o dr._n st._n do_v not_o in_o the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n contradict_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n we_o have_v much_o reason_n to_o conceive_v good_a hope_n of_o the_o salvation_n of_o many_o of_o our_o forefather_n who_o 17._o lead_v away_o with_o the_o common_a superstition_n of_o those_o blind_a time_n may_v yet_o by_o those_o general_a truth_n which_o by_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n be_v preserve_v among_o the_o foul_a over-spreadings_a of_o popery_n agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n though_o clog_v with_o a_o addition_n of_o many_o superstition_n and_o antichristian_a invention_n withal_o be_v bring_v to_o true_a faith_n in_o the_o son_n of_o god_n unfeigned_a repentance_n from_o dead_a work_n and_o a_o sincere_a desire_n and_o endeavour_v of_o new_a and_o holy_a obedience_n this_o be_v the_o religion_n that_o bring_v they_o to_o heaven_n even_o faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o obedience_n this_o be_v the_o true_a and_o the_o old_a and_o the_o catholic_n religion_n and_o this_o be_v our_o religion_n in_o which_o we_o hope_v to_o find_v salvation_n and_o if_o ever_o any_o of_o you_o that_o miscall_v yourselves_o catholic_n come_v to_o heaven_n it_o be_v this_o religion_n must_v carry_v you_o thither_o if_o together_o with_o this_o true_a religion_n of_o faith_n repentance_n and_o obedience_n they_o embrace_v also_o your_o addition_n as_o their_o blind_a guide_n then_o lead_v they_o pray_v to_o our_o lady_n kneel_v to_o a_o image_n creep_v to_o a_o cross_n flock_v to_o a_o mass_n as_o you_o now_o do_v these_o be_v their_o spot_n and_o their_o blemish_n these_o be_v their_o hay_n and_o stubble_n these_o be_v their_o error_n and_o their_o ignorances_n and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o as_o s._n paul_n for_o his_o blasphemy_n and_o persecution_n so_o they_o obtain_v mercy_n for_o these_o sin_n because_o they_o do_v they_o ignorant_o in_o misbelief_n and_o upon_o the_o same_o ground_n we_o have_v cause_n also_o to_o hope_v charitable_o of_o many_o thousand_o poor_a soul_n in_o italy_n spain_n and_o other_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n at_o this_o day_n that_o by_o the_o same_o bless_a mean_n they_o may_v attain_v mercy_n and_o salvation_n in_o the_o end_n although_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n through_o ignorance_n they_o defile_v themselves_o with_o much_o foul_a idolatry_n and_o many_o gross_a superstition_n obj._n but_o the_o ignorance_n which_o excuse_v from_o sin_n be_v ignorantia_fw-la facti_fw-la according_a to_o that_o have_v be_v already_o declare_v but_o they_o be_v ignorantia_fw-la juris_fw-la which_o excuse_v not_o and_o beside_o as_o they_o live_v in_o the_o practice_n of_o that_o worship_n which_o we_o call_v idolatry_n so_o they_o die_v in_o the_o same_o without_o repentance_n and_o so_o their_o case_n be_v not_o the_o same_o with_o s._n paul_n who_o see_v those_o sin_n and_o sorrow_v for_o they_o and_o forsake_v they_o but_o how_o can_v idolater_n live_v and_o die_v so_o without_o
we_o shall_v come_v to_o that_o in_o time_n at_o present_a i_o pray_v clear_a this_o matter_n if_o you_o can_v p._n d._n to_o what_o purpose_n be_v all_o this_o rake_n and_o scrape_v and_o search_v and_o quote_v of_o passage_n not_o at_o all_o to_o the_o point_n of_o idolatry_n r._n p._n what!_o will_v you_o have_v a_o man_n do_v nothing_o to_o fill_v up_o a_o book_n and_o make_v it_o carry_v something_o of_o the_o port_n of_o a_o answer_n especial_o to_o a_o thick_a book_n of_o between_o 800_o and_o 900_o page_n p._n d._n if_o this_o be_v your_o design_n go_v on_o but_o i_o will_v make_v my_o answer_n as_o short_a as_o i_o can_v for_o methinks_v t._n g._n seem_v to_o have_v lose_v that_o spirit_n and_o briskness_n he_o have_v before_o for_o than_o he_o talk_v like_o a_o man_n that_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o keep_v close_o to_o the_o point_n but_o now_o he_o flag_n and_o draw_v heavy_o on_o for_o he_o repeat_v what_o he_o have_v say_v before_o for_o some_o page_n and_o then_o quote_v out_o of_o dr._n st.'s_n other_o book_n for_o several_a page_n more_o and_o at_o last_o it_o come_v to_o no_o more_o than_o this_o dr._n st._n do_v in_o some_o place_n of_o his_o write_n seem_v to_o favour_v the_o dissenter_n i_o be_o quite_o tire_v with_o this_o impertinency_n yet_o i_o will_v fain_o see_v a_o end_n of_o these_o thing_n that_o we_o may_v come_v close_o to_o the_o business_n of_o idolatry_n which_o i_o long_o to_o be_v at_o r._n p._n your_o stomach_n be_v too_o sharp_a set_v we_o must_v blunt_v it_o a_o little_a before_o you_o fall_v to_o p._n d._n you_o take_v the_o course_n to_o do_v it_o with_o all_o this_o impertinency_n but_o what_o be_v it_o you_o have_v to_o say_v r._n p._n to_o please_v you_o i_o will_v bring_v this_o charge_n as_o near_o to_o the_o point_n of_o idolatry_n as_o i_o can_v the_o substance_n of_o it_o be_v this_o dr._n st._n say_v the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v not_o look_v on_o her_o article_n as_o article_n of_o faith_n etc._n but_o as_o inferior_a truth_n from_o thence_o t._n g._n infer_v 1._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v not_o err_v against_o any_o article_n of_o faith_n 2._o dr._n st._n do_v not_o believe_v the_o thirty_o nine_o article_n to_o be_v article_n of_o faith_n 3_o then_o this_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n be_v vain_a and_o groundless_a because_o idolatry_n be_v a_o error_n against_o a_o fundamental_a point_n of_o faith_n p._n d._n here_o be_v not_o one_o word_n new_a in_o all_o this_o long_a charge_n but_o a_o tedious_a repetition_n of_o what_o t._n g._n have_v say_v before_o it_o consist_v of_o two_o point_n 1._o the_o charge_n upon_o dr._n st._n for_o undermine_v the_o church_n of_o england_n 2._o the_o unreasonableness_n of_o the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n upon_o his_o own_o supposition_n because_o t._n g._n seem_v to_o think_v there_o be_v something_o in_o this_o business_n which_o touch_v dr._n st._n to_o the_o quick_a and_o therefore_o he_o decline_v give_v any_o answer_n to_o the_o first_o part_n of_o it_o i_o will_v undertake_v to_o do_v it_o for_o he_o dr._n st._n do_v indeed_o say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v not_o make_v her_o article_n article_n of_o faith_n as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v the_o article_n of_o pope_n pius_n the_o four_o his_o creed_n and_o do_v ever_o any_o divine_a of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n say_v otherwise_o it_o be_v true_a the_o church_n of_o rome_n from_o her_o insolent_a pretence_n of_o infallibility_n do_v make_v all_o thing_n propose_v by_o the_o church_n of_o equal_a necessity_n to_o salvation_n because_o the_o ground_n of_o faith_n be_v the_o church_n authority_n in_o propose_v thing_n to_o be_v believe_v but_o do_v the_o church_n of_o england_n challenge_v any_o such_o infallibility_n to_o herself_o no._n she_o utter_o disow_v it_o in_o her_o very_a article_n therefore_o she_o must_v leave_v matter_n of_o faith_n as_o she_o find_v they_o i._n e._n she_o receive_v all_o the_o creed_n into_o her_o article_n and_o office_n but_o make_v no_o addition_n to_o they_o of_o her_o own_o and_o therefore_o dr._n st._n do_v with_o great_a reason_n say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n make_v no_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o such_o as_o have_v the_o testimony_n and_o approbation_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n and_o of_o all_o age_n and_o be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v such_o by_o rome_n itself_o from_o whence_o he_o do_v just_o magnify_v the_o moderation_n of_o this_o church_n in_o comparison_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n r._n p._n but_o t._n g._n say_v that_o he_o have_v degrade_v the_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n from_o be_v article_n of_o faith_n into_o a_o low_a class_n of_o inferior_a truth_n p._n d._n i_o perceive_v plain_o t._n g._n do_v not_o know_v what_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n mean_v according_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n he_o look_v on_o all_o proposition_n make_v by_o the_o church_n as_o necessary_a article_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o roman_a sense_n and_o found_v on_o the_o doctrine_n of_o infallibility_n but_o where_o the_o church_n infallibility_n be_v reject_v article_n of_o faith_n be_v such_o as_o have_v be_v think_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n which_o consent_n be_v see_v in_o the_o ancient_a creed_n and_o whatever_o doctrine_n be_v not_o contain_v therein_o though_o it_o be_v receive_v as_o truth_n and_o agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n yet_o be_v not_o account_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n i._n e._n not_o immediate_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n as_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n but_o because_o of_o the_o dissension_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n a_o particular_a church_n may_v for_o the_o preservation_n of_o her_o own_o peace_n declare_v her_o sense_n as_o to_o the_o truth_n and_o falsehood_n of_o some_o controvert_v point_n of_o religion_n and_o require_v from_o all_o person_n who_o be_v entrust_v in_o the_o office_n of_o that_o church_n a_o subscription_n to_o those_o article_n which_o do_v imply_v that_o they_o agree_v with_o the_o sense_n of_o that_o church_n about_o they_o r._n p._n but_o dr._n st._n say_v from_o archbishop_n bramhall_n that_o the_o church_n do_v not_o oblige_v any_o man_n to_o believe_v they_o but_o only_o not_o to_o contradict_v they_o and_o upon_o this_o t._n g._n triumph_n over_o dr._n st._n as_o undermine_v the_o doctrine_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n p._n d._n why_o not_o over_o archbishop_n bramhall_n who_o word_n dr._n st._n cite_v and_o be_v he_o a_o favourer_n of_o dissenter_n and_o a_o underminer_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n yet_o dr._n st._n himself_o in_o that_o place_n own_v a_o subscription_n to_o they_o as_o necessary_a and_o what_o do_v subscription_n imply_v less_o than_o agree_v with_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n so_o that_o he_o say_v more_o than_o archbishop_n bramhall_n do_v and_o i_o do_v not_o see_v how_o his_o word_n can_v pass_v but_o with_o this_o construction_n that_o when_o he_o say_v we_o do_v not_o oblige_v any_o man_n to_o believe_v they_o he_o mean_v as_o article_n of_o faith_n of_o which_o he_o speak_v just_a before_o but_o i_o do_v free_o yield_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v require_v assent_n to_o the_o truth_n of_o those_o proposition_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o thirty_o nine_o article_n and_o so_o do_v dr._n st._n when_o he_o say_v the_o church_n require_v subscription_n to_o they_o as_o inferior_a truth_n i._n e._n own_v they_o to_o be_v true_a proposition_n though_o not_o as_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o article_n of_o religion_n as_o our_o church_n call_v they_o r._n p._n if_o they_o be_v but_o inferior_a truth_n say_v t._n g._n be_v it_o worth_a the_o while_n to_o rend_v asunder_o the_o peace_n of_o christendom_n for_o they_o be_v not_o this_o a_o very_a reasonable_a account_n as_o i._o s._n call_v it_o of_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n and_o a_o rare_a way_n of_o justify_v she_o from_o the_o guilt_n of_o schism_n p._n d._n t._n g._n mistake_v the_o matter_n it_o be_v not_o our_o impose_v negative_a point_n on_o other_o but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n impose_v false_a and_o absurd_a doctrine_n for_o necessary_a article_n of_o faith_n which_o do_v break_v the_o peace_n of_o christendom_n we_o can_v have_v no_o communion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n unless_o we_o own_v her_o supremacy_n her_o canon_n of_o scripture_n her_o rule_n of_o faith_n or_o the_o equality_n of_o tradition_n and_o scripture_n her_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n invocation_n of_o saint_n worship_n of_o image_n transubstantiation_n etc._n etc._n and_o we_o be_v require_v not_o
to_o the_o point_n of_o idolatry_n itself_o r._n p._n hold_v a_o little_a you_o be_v still_o too_o quick_a i_o have_v something_o more_o yet_o to_o say_v to_o you_o before_o we_o come_v to_o it_o p._n d._n what_o be_v that_o r._n p._n i_o have_v a_o great_a deal_n to_o tell_v you_o out_o of_o mr._n thorndikes_n just_a weight_n and_o measure_n 113._o about_o the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n and_o the_o mischievous_a consequence_n of_o it_o p._n d._n to_o what_o end_n shall_v you_o repeat_v all_o that_o i_o begin_v to_o think_v you_o be_v not_o in_o jest_n when_o you_o say_v t._n g._n put_v in_o some_o thing_n to_o fill_v up_o his_o book_n dr._n st._n have_v before_o declare_v the_o great_a esteem_n he_o have_v for_o mr._n thorndikes_n learning_n and_o piety_n but_o in_o this_o particular_a he_o declare_v that_o he_o see_v no_o reason_n to_o recede_v from_o the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n on_o the_o account_n of_o mr._n thorndikes_n authority_n or_o argument_n and_o i_o have_v already_o give_v you_o such_o a_o account_n of_o his_o opinion_n with_o respect_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o i_o hope_v will_v take_v off_o mr._n thorndikes_n testimony_n be_v so_o often_o allege_v against_o we_o by_o t._n g._n and_o his_o brethren_n if_o t._n g._n have_v not_o purposely_o decline_v the_o main_a matter_n in_o debate_n between_o dr._n st._n and_o he_o he_o will_v never_o have_v stuff_v out_o so_o much_o of_o his_o book_n with_o thing_n so_o little_o material_a to_o that_o which_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v the_o main_a design_n of_o it_o r._n p._n but_o i_o have_v somewhat_o more_o to_o say_v to_o you_o which_o be_v 116._o that_o you_o charge_v t._n g._n with_o decline_v the_o dispute_n about_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o second_o commandment_n whereas_o he_o do_v speak_v particular_o to_o it_o p._n d._n i_o be_o glad_a to_o hear_v it_o i_o hope_v than_o he_o take_v off_o the_o force_n of_o what_o dr._n st._n have_v say_v in_o his_o late_a defence_n about_o it_o for_o i_o assure_v you_o it_o be_v much_o expect_v from_o he_o r._n p._n what_o will_v you_o have_v a_o man_n do_v 127._o he_o produce_v at_o least_o four_o leaf_n of_o what_o he_o have_v say_v before_o and_o then_o a_o little_a after_o near_o two_o leaf_n more_o and_o within_o a_o few_o page_n above_o two_o leaf_n again_o out_o of_o his_o old_a book_n and_o then_o tell_v how_o dr._n st._n spend_v above_o a_o hundred_o page_n about_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o second_o commandment_n whereas_o he_o neither_o remove_v the_o contradiction_n nor_o answer_v the_o argument_n of_o t._n g._n but_o criticize_v upon_o the_o exception_n of_o t._n g._n to_o the_o several_a method_n for_o find_v out_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o law_n but_o say_v he_o what_o need_v so_o much_o pain_n and_o labour_n be_v take_v if_o the_o law_n be_v express_v and_o do_v not_o you_o think_v this_o enough_o about_o the_o second_o commandment_n p._n d._n no_o true_o nor_o you_o neither_o upon_o any_o consideration_n for_o the_o dr._n in_o his_o discourse_n upon_o the_o second_o commandment_n 692._o 1._o have_v manifest_o overthrow_v t._n g.'s_n notion_n of_o a_o idol_n viz._n of_o a_o figment_n set_v up_o for_o worship_n by_o such_o clear_a and_o convince_a argument_n that_o if_o t._n g·_n have_v any_o thing_n to_o have_v say_v in_o defence_n of_o it_o he_o will_v never_o have_v let_v it_o escape_v thus_o 2._o 698._o he_o have_v prove_v the_o sense_n he_o give_v of_o the_o commandment_n to_o be_v the_o same_o which_o the_o father_n give_v of_o it_o 3._o 717._o he_o take_v off_o t._n g.'s_n instance_n of_o worship_v before_o the_o ark_n and_o the_o cherubim_n and_o 720._o the_o testimony_n of_o s._n austin_n 4._o 784._o he_o answer_v t._n g.'s_n objection_n and_o clear_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o law_n by_o all_o the_o mean_v a_o law_n can_v be_v well_o understand_v and_o be_v all_o this_o do_v you_o think_v answer_v by_o t._n g.'s_n repeat_v what_o he_o have_v say_v before_o or_o blow_v down_o by_o a_o puff_n or_o two_o of_o wit_n i_o do_v not_o know_v what_o t._n g._n think_v of_o it_o but_o i_o do_v not_o find_v any_o understand_a man_n take_v this_o for_o a_o answer_n but_o a_o mere_a put-off_a so_o that_o i_o may_v well_o say_v dr._n st.'s_n proof_n be_v invincible_a when_o t._n g._n so_o shameful_o retreat_v out_o of_o the_o field_n and_o skulk_v under_o some_o hedge_n and_o thorn_n which_o he_o have_v plant_v before_o for_o a_o shelter_n in_o time_n of_o need_n r._n p._n but_o why_o do_v not_o dr._n st._n answer_v punctual_o to_o all_o that_o t._n g._n say_v p._n d._n because_o he_o do_v not_o think_v it_o material_a if_o the_o main_a thing_n be_v prove_v r._n p._n bu●_n t._n g._n will_v think_v they_o unanswerable_a till_o he_o receive_v satisfaction_n concern_v they_o p._n d._n that_o it_o may_v be_v be_v impossible_a to_o give_v a_o man_n that_o have_v no_o mind_n to_o receive_v it_o but_o if_o you_o please_v let_v i_o hear_v the_o strength_n of_o what_o t._n g._n lay_v such_o weight_n upon_o that_o he_o may_v have_v no_o such_o pretence_n for_o the_o future_a and_o lest_o the_o three_o time_n we_o meet_v with_o the_o same_o colewort_n r._n p._n 117._o do_v not_o dr._n st._n make_v express_a scripture_n his_o most_o certain_a rule_n of_o faith_n do_v not_o he_o on_o the_o other_o side_n deny_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v not_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v such_o by_o rome_n itself_o then_o if_o god_n have_v express_o forbid_v the_o worship_n of_o himself_o by_o a_o image_n it_o be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n that_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v worship_v by_o a_o image_n and_o since_o rome_n do_v not_o acknowledge_v it_o it_o be_v not_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n therefore_o t._n g._n call_v upon_o the_o dr._n to_o speak_v out_o be_v it_o or_o be_v it_o not_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o t._n g._n say_v he_o have_v find_v out_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o business_n for_o he_o can_v find_v out_o mystery_n i_o assure_v you_o as_o well_o as_o discover_v plot_n and_o catch_v mole_n to_o gratify_v the_o nonconformist_n the_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n must_v pass_v only_o for_o inferior_a truth_n but_o when_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v to_o be_v charge_v with_o idolatry_n than_o they_o be_v article_n of_o faith_n so_o that_o as_o t._n g._n pleasant_o say_v the_o same_o proposition_n take_v irenical_o be_v a_o inferior_a truth_n but_o take_v polemical_o it_o must_v be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n because_o express_o reveal_v in_o scripture_n p._n d._n be_v this_o it_o which_o t._n g._n thought_n worth_a repeat_n at_o large_a sure_o it_o be_v for_o the_o sake_n of_o the_o clinch_n of_o irenical_o and_o polemical_o and_o not_o for_o any_o show_n of_o difficulty_n in_o the_o thing_n for_o all_o the_o mist_n be_v easy_o scatter_v by_o observe_v a_o very_a plain_a distinction_n of_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v either_o take_v 1._o for_o a_o essential_a point_n of_o faith_n such_o as_o be_v antecedent_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o christian_a church_n and_o so_o the_o creed_n be_v say_v to_o contain_v the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n dr._n st._n say_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v hold_v all_o the_o essential_a point_n of_o faith_n which_o we_o do_v 2._o for_o any_o doctrine_n plain_o reveal_v in_o scripture_n which_o be_v our_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o do_v dr._n st._n ever_o deny_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n oppose_v some_o thing_n clear_o reveal_v in_o scripture_n nay_o it_o be_v the_o design_n of_o his_o book_n to_o prove_v it_o do_v and_o if_o every_o doctrine_n which_o can_v be_v deduce_v from_o a_o plain_a command_n of_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v look_v on_o as_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n then_o that_o the_o cup_n be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o those_o who_o partake_v of_o the_o bread_n that_o prayer_n be_v to_o be_v in_o a_o know_a tongue_n will_v become_v article_n of_o faith_n and_o do_v you_o think_v dr._n st._n either_o irenical_o or_o polemical_o do_v ever_o yield_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v not_o oppose_v these_o if_o t._n g._n lay_v so_o much_o weight_n on_o such_o slight_a thing_n as_o these_o i_o must_v tell_v you_o he_o be_v not_o the_o man_n i_o take_v he_o for_o and_o i_o believe_v it_o be_v only_a civility_n in_o dr._n st._n to_o pass_v such_o thing_n by_o r.p._n but_o t.g._n will_v know_v what_o he_o mean_v by_o express_o forbid_v 121._o only_o that_o it_o be_v clear_a to_o himself_o expect_v that_o other_o shall_v submit_v to_o his_o say_n it_o
any_o way_n repugnant_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n r._n p._n but_o t._n g._n say_v the_o term_n of_o communion_n with_o the_o church_n be_v not_o the_o opinion_n of_o her_o school-divines_a 263._o but_o the_o decree_n of_o her_o council_n p._n d._n and_o what_o then_o do_v dr._n st._n meddle_v with_o the_o school-divines_a any_o otherwise_o than_o as_o they_o explain_v the_o sense_n of_o council_n or_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n and_o what_o help_v more_o proper_a to_o understand_v these_o than_o the_o doctrine_n of_o your_o most_o learned_a divine_n t._n g._n will_v have_v one_o mr._n thorndike_n to_o speak_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n against_o the_o current_a doctrine_n of_o the_o rest_n as_o dr._n st._n have_v prove_v yet_o he_o will_v not_o allow_v so_o many_o divine_n of_o great_a note_n and_o authority_n to_o explain_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v this_o equal_a deal_n r._n p._n t._n g._n say_v 264._o that_o for_o his_o life_n he_o can_v understand_v any_o more_o the_o idolatry_n of_o worship_v a_o image_n than_o the_o treason_n of_o bow_v to_o a_o chair_n of_o state_n or_o the_o adultery_n of_o a_o wife_n kiss_v her_o husband_n picture_n and_o that_o the_o same_o subtlety_n may_v be_v use_v against_o these_o as_o against_o the_o other_o and_o therefore_o notwithstanding_o the_o dispute_n of_o school-divines_a honest_a nature_n inform_v with_o christian_a principle_n will_v be_v security_n enough_o against_o the_o practice_n of_o idolatry_n in_o honour_v the_o image_n of_o christ_n for_o his_o sake_n p._n d._n what_o be_v the_o matter_n with_o t._n g._n that_o for_o his_o life_n he_o can_v understand_v these_o thing_n no_o better_o after_o all_o the_o pain_n which_o have_v be_v take_v about_o he_o have_v not_o the_o difference_n of_o these_o case_n be_v lay_v open_a before_o he_o do_v not_o your_o own_o writer_n confess_v that_o in_o some_o case_n a_o image_n may_v become_v a_o idol_n by_o have_v divine_a worship_n give_v to_o it_o be_v this_o then_o the_o same_o case_n with_o a_o wife_n kiss_v her_o husband_n picture_n do_v not_o this_o excuse_n the_o gnostic_n worship_v of_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n as_o well_o as_o you_o if_o there_o may_v be_v idolatry_n in_o the_o worship_n of_o a_o image_n we_o be_v then_o to_o consider_v whether_o your_o worship_n be_v not_o idolatry_n especial_o since_o both_o party_n charge_v each_o other_o with_o idolatry_n those_o who_o will_v have_v it_o to_o be_v latria_n and_o those_o who_o will_v not_o and_o i_o do_v not_o see_v what_o honest_a nature_n can_v do_v in_o this_o case_n however_o assist_v unless_o it_o can_v make_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n to_o be_v neither_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o i_o see_v t._n g._n will_v fain_o make_v it_o to_o be_v no_o more_o than_o bare_a honour_n of_o a_o image_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o christ_n but_o this_o do_v not_o come_v up_o to_o the_o decree_n of_o council_n the_o general_a sense_n of_o divine_n and_o the_o constant_a practice_n of_o your_o church_n if_o ever_o worship_n be_v give_v to_o image_n you_o give_v it_o by_o use_v all_o act_n of_o adoration_n towards_o they_o r._n p._n but_o suppose_v the_o king_n have_v make_v a_o order_n that_o due_a honour_n and_o respect_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o the_o chair_n of_o state_n ought_v not_o that_o to_o be_v observe_v notwithstanding_o the_o dispute_n which_o may_v arise_v about_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o act_n p._n d._n to_o answer_v this_o we_o must_v suppose_v a_o command_n from_o god_n that_o we_o must_v worship_v a_o image_n of_o christ_n as_o we_o do_v his_o person_n but_o here_o it_o be_v just_a contrary_n the_o reason_n of_o the_o second_o command_n be_v own_v by_o the_o christian_a church_n to_o hold_v against_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n now_o as_o well_o as_o under_o the_o law_n but_o those_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n who_o do_v charge_v each_o other_o with_o idolatry_n without_o suppose_v any_o such_o command_n do_v proceed_v upon_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o worship_n which_o must_v either_o be_v divine_a worship_n which_o one_o party_n say_v be_v idolatry_n be_v the_o same_o which_o be_v give_v to_o god_n or_o a_o inferior_a religious_a worship_n which_o the_o other_o party_n say_v must_v be_v idolatry_n be_v a_o expression_n of_o our_o submission_n to_o a_o inanimate_a thing_n and_o for_o my_o life_n i_o can_v see_v what_o answer_n t._n g._n make_v to_o this_o r._n p._n t._n g._n say_v 265._o the_o rule_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v in_o this_o case_n as_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o court_n about_o the_o chair_n of_o state_n p._n d._n what!_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v observe_v absolute_o whether_o against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n or_o not_o which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v at_o court_n that_o the_o order_n of_o the_o green-cloth_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v against_o his_o majesty_n pleasure_n but_o not_o to_o insist_v on_o that_o i_o say_v in_o this_o case_n the_o rule_n of_o the_o church_n help_v nothing_o for_o they_o who_o do_v follow_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o church_n must_v do_v one_o or_o the_o other_o of_o these_o and_o whichsoever_o they_o do_v they_o be_v charge_v with_o idolatry_n and_o therefore_o dr._n st._n have_v great_a reason_n to_o say_v where_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n of_o do_v the_o thing_n the_o best_a way_n to_o avoid_v idolatry_n be_v to_o give_v no_o worship_n to_o image_n at_o all_o r._n p._n 266._o what_o will_v become_v of_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o church_n say_v t._n g._n if_o man_n may_v be_v permit_v to_o break_v they_o for_o such_o caprice_n as_o these_o be_v p._n d._n be_v you_o in_o earnest_n do_v t._n g._n call_v these_o caprice_n idolatry_n be_v account_v both_o by_o father_n and_o schoolman_n a_o crime_n of_o the_o high_a nature_n and_o when_o i_o be_o tell_v i_o must_v commit_v it_o one_o way_n or_o other_o by_o your_o divine_n if_o i_o give_v worship_n to_o image_n be_v this_o only_a a_o capriche_n r._n p._n 267._o will_v not_o the_o same_o reason_n hold_v against_o bow_v to_o the_o altar_n bow_v being_n a_o act_n of_o worship_n appropriate_v to_o god_n p._n d._n will_v the_o same_o reason_n hold_v against_o bow_v out_o of_o reverence_n to_o almighty_a god_n which_o i_o have_v tell_v you_o again_o and_o again_o be_v all_o our_o church_n allow_v in_o that_o which_o you_o call_v bow_v to_o the_o altar_n i_o see_v you_o be_v very_o hard_o put_v to_o it_o to_o bring_v in_o this_o single_a instance_n upon_o every_o turn_n against_o the_o plain_a sense_n and_o declaration_n of_o our_o church_n if_o this_o be_v all_o t._n g._n upon_o so_o long_a consideration_n have_v to_o say_v in_o this_o matter_n it_o be_v not_o hard_a to_o judge_v who_o have_v much_o the_o better_a cause_n r._n p._n i_o pray_v hold_v from_o triumph_v a_o while_n for_o there_o be_v a_o fresh_a charge_n behind_o wherein_o you_o will_v repent_v that_o ever_o you_o undertake_v to_o defend_v dr._n st._n it_o be_v concern_v the_o unjust_a parallel_n he_o have_v make_v between_o the_o heathen_a and_o romish_a idolatry_n p._n d._n i_o see_v no_o cause_n to_o repent_v hitherto_o and_o i_o hope_v i_o shall_v find_v as_o little_o when_o i_o come_v to_o that_o the_o four_o conference_n about_o the_o parallel_n between_o the_o heathen_a and_o romish_a idolatry_n r._n p._n have_v you_o consider_v what_o t._n g._n say_v concern_v the_o parallel_n between_o the_o heathen_a and_o romish_a idolatry_n and_o do_v not_o your_o heart_n fail_v you_o as_o to_o the_o defence_n of_o dr._n st._n which_o you_o promise_v to_o undertake_v p._n d._n no_o true_o the_o more_o i_o have_v consider_v it_o the_o less_o i_o fear_v it_o r._n p._n what_o think_v you_o of_o the_o notion_n of_o idolatry_n he_o charge_v on_o t._n g._n viz._n that_o it_o be_v the_o give_v the_o sovereign_a worship_n of_o god_n to_o a_o creature_n and_o among_o the_o heathen_n to_o the_o devil_n as_o if_o the_o idolatry_n of_o the_o heathen_n consist_v only_o in_o worship_v the_o devil_n 276._o whereas_o it_o appear_v from_o the_o word_n dr._n st._n cite_v out_o of_o he_o that_o he_o charge_v the_o heathen_n with_o idolatry_n in_o worship_v their_o image_n for_o god_n and_o the_o creature_n for_o god_n although_o withal_o they_o worship_v evil_a spirit_n and_o t._n g._n contend_v that_o their_o supreme_a god_n be_v a_o arch-devil_n p._n d._n be_v this_o such_o a_o difficulty_n to_o be_v set_v in_o the_o front_n i_o suppose_v it_o be_v only_o to_o try_v whether_o i_o will_v stumble_v at_o the_o threshold_n if_o the_o supreme_a god_n who_o the_o heathen_n worship_v be_v a_o arch-devil_n as_o t._n g._n
england_n and_o in_o her_o separation_n from_o rome_n p._n 168_o a_o passage_n in_o the_o irenicum_fw-la clear_v p._n 170_o how_o far_o idolatry_n consistent_a with_o own_v the_o fundamental_a article_n of_o faith_n p._n 175_o t._n g.'s_n shuffle_a about_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o second_o commandment_n p._n 186_o three_o conference_n about_o the_o nature_n of_o idolatry_n p._n 195_o a_o abstract_n of_o the_o design_n of_o dr._n st.'s_n general_a discourse_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o idolatry_n p._n 196_o of_o the_o manner_n of_o t._n g.'s_n answer_v it_o p._n 200_o the_o postulata_fw-la grant_v by_o he_o p._n 203_o many_o material_a omission_n in_o t._n g.'s_n answer_n p._n 205_o of_o the_o patronus_fw-la bonae_fw-la fidei_fw-la and_o the_o service_n he_o do_v the_o papist_n p._n 208_o the_o disparity_n between_o bow_v towards_o the_o altar_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n at_o large_a clear_v p._n 211_o of_o the_o difference_n between_o reverence_n to_o sacred_a place_n and_o worship_n of_o image_n p._n 215_o the_o argument_n of_o the_o patronus_fw-la bonae_fw-la fidei_fw-la against_o bow_v towards_o the_o altar_n answer_v p._n 222_o the_o supposition_n of_o transubstantiation_n do_v not_o make_v it_o more_o reasonable_a p._n 227_o of_o idolatry_n in_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n p._n 233_o of_o the_o sinfulness_n of_o idolatry_n antecedent_o to_o a_o positive_a law_n p._n 235_o t._n g.'s_n principle_n justify_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n in_o any_o creature_n p._n 242_o relative_n worship_n condemn_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n p._n 248_o as_o great_a danger_n in_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n as_o of_o god_n creature_n p._n 252_o t._n g.'s_n trifle_v about_o meletetique_n and_o mystical_a theology_n p._n 255_o the_o incongruity_n of_o worship_v christ_n by_o a_o crucifix_n p._n 257_o of_o the_o nature_n and_o kind_n of_o certainty_n p._n 258_o why_o the_o certainty_n of_o religion_n call_v moral_a p._n 265_o several_a sort_n of_o certainty_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n p._n 266_o of_o the_o impossibility_n of_o falsehood_n in_o it_o p._n 268_o dr._n st.'s_n charge_v of_o idolatry_n reach_v to_o definition_n of_o council_n and_o practice_n general_o allow_v p._n 270_o the_o parallel_n about_o bow_v towards_o the_o altar_n far_o answer_v p._n 273_o his_o fidelity_n in_o citation_n justify_v against_o t._n g.'s_n cavil_v p._n 276_o the_o citation_n of_o lugo_n defend_v p._n 277_o the_o parallel_n between_o reverence_n to_o sacred_a place_n and_o thing_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n full_o disprove_v p._n 284_o the_o citation_n of_o greg._n nyssen_n enter_v upon_o p._n 286_o the_o parallel_n between_o the_o arian_n and_o romish_a idolatry_n defend_v p._n 288_o t._n g.'s_n exception_n against_o it_o answer_v p._n 293_o greg._n nyssen'_n testimony_n clear_v p._n 303_o the_o difference_n of_o the_o practice_n of_o invocation_n of_o saint_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n from_o the_o address_n in_o the_o four_o century_n show_v in_o several_a particular_n p._n 306_o t._n g.'s_n answer_n to_o the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n examine_v p._n 314_o the_o testimony_n of_o arnobius_n right_o cite_v by_o dr._n st._n p._n 325_o of_o relative_a latria_n be_v give_v to_o image_n p._n 327_o of_o inferior_a worship_n as_o distinct_a from_o latria_n and_o neither_o of_o they_o show_v to_o clear_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n from_o idolatry_n p._n 337_o four_o conference_n about_o the_o parallel_n between_o the_o heathen_a and_o romish_a idolatry_n p._n 349_o t._n g.'s_n notion_n of_o heathen_a idolatry_n p._n 350_o how_o far_o jupiter_n be_v the_o supreme_a god_n relate_v to_o the_o main_a controversy_n p._n 351_o in_o what_o sense_n jupiter_n may_v be_v call_v a_o unknown_a god_n p._n 354_o s._n augustin_n make_v the_o true_a god_n to_o be_v true_o worship_v by_o the_o athenian_n p._n 357_o t._n g.'s_n exception_n answer_v p._n 359_o the_o distinction_n between_o jupiter_n of_o greet_n and_o the_o supreme_a jupiter_n p._n 365_o the_o place_n of_o rom._n 1.19_o 20._o not_o answer_v by_o t._n g._n p._n 369_o aquinas_n his_o testimony_n clear_v p._n 371_o the_o state_n of_o the_o controversy_n about_o the_o father_n p._n 373_o justin_n martyr_n no_o friend_n to_o t._n g.'s_n hypothesis_n p._n 377_o athenagoras_n at_o large_a clear_v p._n 379_o a_o threefold_a jupiter_n among_o the_o father_n p._n 380_o theophilus_n antiochenus_fw-la not_o to_o t._n g.'s_n purpose_n p._n 387_o tertullian_n vindicate_v p._n 388_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n p._n 400_o minucius_n fellix_fw-la p._n 405_o other_o testimony_n reject_v as_o impertinent_a p._n 415_o t._n g.'s_n account_n of_o heathen_a idolatry_n examine_v p._n 419_o first_o in_o take_v their_o image_n for_o god_n at_o large_a disprove_v p._n 420_o 2._o in_o worship_v many_o false_a god_n that_o likewise_o disprove_v p._n 429_o t._n g.'s_n argument_n answer_v p._n 431_o the_o absurd_a consequence_n of_o this_o notion_n of_o heathen_a idolatry_n p._n 440_o t._n g.'s_n pitiful_a evasion_n as_o to_o the_o modern_a idolater_n p._n 443_o 3._o in_o worship_v the_o creature_n instead_o of_o god_n the_o nature_n of_o that_o idolatry_n inquire_v into_o p._n 457_o worship_v the_o creature_n with_o respect_n to_o god_n as_o soul_n of_o the_o world_n justifiable_a on_o the_o the_o same_o ground_n with_o adoration_n of_o the_o host._n p._n 461_o why_o it_o be_v idolatry_n to_o give_v all_o external_a worship_n to_o the_o creature_n p._n 467_o a_o twofold_a hypothesis_n of_o heathen_a idolatry_n p._n 470_o the_o parallel_n as_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n defend_v p._n 473_o of_o appropriate_a act_n of_o divine_a worship_n p._n 478_o what_o error_n of_o judgement_n the_o act_n of_o idolatry_n imply_v p._n 491_o lugo_n testimony_n clear_v p._n 495_o whether_o the_o church_n have_v power_n to_o discriminate_a act_n of_o worship_n p._n 499_o how_o far_o circumstance_n discriminate_a act_n of_o civil_a and_o religious_a worship_n p._n 501_o whether_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v appropriate_v any_o act_n of_o external_a adoration_n to_o god_n p._n 522_o that_o the_o very_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v offer_v in_o honour_n of_o god_n creature_n and_o consequent_o be_v not_o appropriate_v to_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n p._n 526_o dr._n st._n do_v not_o differ_v from_o the_o divine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n about_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass._n p._n 540_o how_o far_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o act_n of_o the_o people_n p._n 542_o errata_fw-la page_n 108._o line_n 11._o deal_n not_o p._n 161._o l._n 21._o deal_n not_o p._n 215._o l._n 7._o r._n savour_v p._n 232._o l._n 13._o r._n declare_v p._n 234._o l._n 4._o r._n as_o so_o sacred_a p._n 246._o l._n 15._o for_o no_o r._n do_v p._n 261._o l._n 4._o for_o not_o so_o r._n so_o p._n 308._o l._n 17._o for_o fallo_n r._n fullo_n p._n 319._o l._n 1._o for_o idolatry_n r._n idolater_n p._n 334._o l._n 7._o for_o i_o not_o r._n i_o do_v not_o p._n 511._o l._n 5_o 6._o for_o matter_n r._n matter_n first_o conference_n concern_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n about_o the_o idolatry_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n rom._n p._n you_o be_v well_o meet_v at_o this_o auction_n of_o book_n i_o have_v be_v present_a at_o many_o of_o they_o beyond_o sea_n but_o i_o never_o be_v at_o one_o in_o england_n before_o how_o go_v the_o price_n of_o book_n here_o fan._n ch._n very_o dear_a methinks_v by_o the_o book_n i_o have_v buy_v but_o i_o find_v they_o be_v so_o catch_v up_o by_o our_o brethren_n that_o if_o we_o will_v have_v they_o we_o must_v pay_v dear_a for_o they_o r._n p._n may_v i_o know_v what_o they_o be_v sir_n f._n c._n only_o some_o few_o choice_a piece_n which_o i_o have_v pick_v out_o of_o this_o great_a catalogue_n such_o as_o nepthali_n or_o the_o groan_n of_o the_o church_n of_o scotland_n cook_n monarchy_n no_o creature_n of_o god_n make_v but_o the_o thing_n i_o most_o value_n be_v the_o pamphlet_n such_o as_o sermon_n before_o the_o long_a parliament_n in_o several_a volume_n and_o a_o rare_a collection_n of_o author_n about_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n r._n p._n be_v there_o so_o many_o book_n to_o be_v have_v about_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n f._n c._n yes_o a_o great_a many_o have_v write_v for_o and_o against_o it_o r._n p._n who_o be_v they_o who_o have_v write_v for_o it_o f._n c._n to_o tell_v you_o the_o truth_n some_o of_o the_o same_o who_o write_v against_o it_o heretofore_o but_o they_o be_v now_o more_o enlighten_v as_o those_o who_o write_v against_o separation_n when_o time_n be_v be_v now_o the_o great_a advocate_n for_o it_o for_o there_o be_v some_o providential_a truth_n which_o vary_v according_a to_o circumstance_n do_v not_o we_o see_v the_o papist_n who_o be_v
think_v the_o great_a enemy_n to_o toleration_n in_o the_o world_n now_o plead_v most_o vehement_o for_o it_o and_o be_v even_o angry_a with_o we_o for_o not_o act_v sufficient_o in_o this_o cause_n against_o the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o because_o i_o take_v you_o for_o a_o friend_n by_o your_o inquire_n after_o these_o book_n i_o must_v tell_v you_o it_o be_v yet_o a_o disputable_a point_n among_o we_o how_o far_o we_o may_v join_v with_o antichrist_n to_o promote_v the_o interest_n of_o christ_n and_o some_o insist_v on_o that_o place_n to_o prove_v the_o unlawfulness_n of_o it_o be_v you_o not_o unequal_o yoke_v other_o again_o prove_v it_o lawful_a because_o it_o be_v say_v yet_o not_o altogether_o with_o the_o fornicator_n of_o this_o world_n or_o with_o idolater_n whence_o they_o observe_v that_o they_o may_v join_v with_o they_o in_o some_o thing_n or_o for_o some_o end_n but_o not_o altogether_o i._n e._n they_o must_v not_o join_v with_o they_o in_o their_o idolatry_n but_o they_o may_v against_o the_o church_n of_o england_n r._n p._n this_o be_v too_o public_a a_o place_n to_o talk_v of_o these_o matter_n in_o but_o may_v we_o not_o withdraw_v into_o the_o next_o room_n for_o i_o have_v a_o great_a mind_n to_o set_v you_o right_o in_o this_o main_a point_n of_o present_a concernment_n and_o if_o the_o papist_n shall_v be_v find_v not_o to_o be_v idolater_n a_o great_a part_n of_o your_o difficulty_n be_v go_v do_v you_o think_v it_o be_v not_o fit_a for_o you_o to_o be_v better_o inform_v in_o this_o matter_n when_o a_o thing_n of_o so_o great_a consequence_n depend_v upon_o it_o as_o your_o deliverance_n from_o the_o persecution_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o you_o know_v we_o have_v all_o sigh_v and_o groan_v for_o a_o long_a time_n it_o be_v in_o vain_a for_o any_o of_o you_o to_o expect_v favour_n from_o thence_o as_o long_o as_o she_o be_v able_a to_o stand_v for_o if_o the_o bishop_n be_v never_o so_o much_o incline_v to_o it_o how_o can_v they_o possible_o give_v ease_n to_o you_o without_o destroy_v themselves_o and_o since_o the_o dissent_v party_n be_v so_o different_a among_o themselves_o in_o their_o light_n and_o attainment_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o please_v any_o one_o party_n without_o displease_v all_o the_o rest_n comprehension_n be_v a_o mere_a snare_n and_o temptation_n to_o the_o brethren_n be_v a_o design_n to_o prefer_v some_o and_o to_o leave_v the_o rest_n in_o the_o lurch_n let_v we_o all_o join_v our_o strength_n together_o to_o pull_v down_o this_o church_n of_o england_n and_o then_o though_o there_o be_v a_o king_n in_o israel_n every_o one_o may_v do_v what_o seem_v good_a in_o his_o own_o eye_n f._n c._n i_o doubt_v you_o be_v not_o well_o see_v in_o scripture_n for_o the_o text_n be_v in_o those_o day_n there_o be_v no_o king_n in_o israel_n and_o every_o one_o do_v what_o seem_v good_a in_o his_o own_o eye_n whence_o you_o may_v observe_v a_o special_a hint_n by_o the_o by_o that_o toleration_n agree_v best_a with_o a_o commonwealth_n but_o this_o to_o yourself_o and_o you_o may_v just_o wonder_v at_o this_o freedom_n with_o you_o but_o that_o i_o remember_v you_o many_o year_n ago_o when_o you_o and_o i_o preach_v up_o the_o five_o monarchy_n together_o in_o the_o army_n those_o be_v glorious_a day_n ah_o the_o liberty_n we_o then_o enjoy_v do_v we_o then_o think_v the_o good_a old_a cause_n will_v ever_o have_v end_v thus_o well!_o it_o be_v good_a to_o be_v silent_a in_o bad_a time_n but_o methinks_v you_o and_o i_o however_o may_v retire_v and_o talk_v over_o old_a story_n and_o refresh_v our_o memory_n with_o former_a out-going_n together_o for_o here_o be_v little_a at_o present_a for_o we_o to_o do_v r._n p._n whereabout_o be_v they_o now_o in_o the_o catalogue_n f._n c._n among_o the_o father_n those_o old-testament_n divine_v what_o light_n have_v we_o see_v since_o their_o day_n we_o need_v not_o trouble_v ourselves_o about_o they_o but_o i_o observe_v the_o church_n of_o england_n man_n buy_v they_o up_o at_o any_o rate_n what_o price_n do_v they_o give_v for_o a_o justin_n martyr_n or_o epiphanius_n or_o philo_n who_o they_o say_v be_v a_o mere_a jew_n how_o must_v they_o starve_v their_o people_n with_o the_o divinity_n of_o these_o man_n how_o much_o of_o the_o good_a divinity_n of_o the_o late_a time_n may_v they_o have_v for_o the_o money_n we_o can_v but_o pity_v their_o blindness_n but_o i_o see_v we_o can_v be_v here_o so_o private_a as_o we_o wish_v for_o yonder_o sit_v a_o divine_a of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n who_o i_o suppose_v be_v the_o person_n who_o buy_v so_o many_o father_n at_o the_o last_o auction_n as_o though_o he_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o write_v against_o the_o papist_n r._n p._n sit_v you_o by_o a_o while_n and_o we_o will_v talk_v of_o our_o matter_n another_o time_n i_o have_v be_v much_o abroad_o since_o you_o and_o i_o be_v first_o acquaint_v and_o have_v late_o bring_v over_o a_o new_a book_n from_o paris_n you_o shall_v see_v how_o i_o will_v handle_v he_o and_o if_o you_o put_v in_o upon_o occasion_n you_o shall_v find_v by_o this_o experiment_n what_o success_n our_o unite_a force_n will_v have_v against_o the_o church_n of_o england_n f._n c._n do_v you_o begin_v and_o you_o shall_v see_v how_o i_o will_v second_v you_o when_o occasion_n offer_v itself_o r._n p._n sir_n i_o perceive_v the_o divine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v buy_v up_o the_o father_n very_a much_o at_o auction_n i_o wonder_v that_o any_o who_o read_v the_o father_n can_v be_v for_o the_o church_n of_o england_n pr._n diu._n and_o i_o do_v more_o wonder_n at_o you_o for_o say_v so_o for_o therefore_o we_o be_v for_o the_o church_n of_o england_n because_o we_o read_v both_o scripture_n and_o father_n r._n p._n to_o what_o purpose_n be_v all_o this_o charge_n and_o pain_n if_o there_o be_v a_o infallible_a church_n p._n d._n therefore_o to_o good_a purpose_n because_o there_o be_v no_o one_o church_n infallible_a r._n p._n be_v there_o not_o a_o catholic_n church_n p._n d._n do_v you_o think_v i_o have_v forget_v my_o creed_n r._n p._n which_o be_v that_o catholic_n church_n p._n d._n which_o of_o all_o the_o part_n be_v the_o whole_a be_v that_o your_o wise_a question_n do_v not_o you_o know_v the_o christian_a church_n have_v be_v break_v into_o different_a communion_n ever_o since_o the_o four_o general_a council_n and_o continue_v so_o to_o this_o day_n what_o do_v you_o mean_v by_o the_o catholic_n church_n r._n p._n i_o mean_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n p._n d._n then_o you_o ask_v i_o which_o be_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o what_o need_v you_o ask_v that_o since_o you_o know_v it_o already_o r._n p._n but_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o catholic_n church_n p._n d._n you_o may_v as_o well_o say_v london_n be_v england_n or_o england_n the_o world_n and_o why_o may_v not_o we_o call_v england_n the_o world_n because_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n be_v divide_v from_o it_o as_o you_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o catholic_n church_n because_o the_o other_o church_n be_v separate_v in_o communion_n from_o it_o r._n p._n i_o mean_v the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o head_n and_o fountain_n of_o catholic_n doctrine_n and_o other_o church_n be_v pure_a and_o sound_a as_o they_o do_v agree_v with_o it_o p._n d._n your_o proposition_n be_v not_o so_o self-evident_a that_o the_o bare_a know_v your_o meaning_n must_v make_v i_o assent_v i_o pray_v first_o prove_v what_o you_o say_v before_o i_o yield_v r.p._n be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n once_o a_o sound_n and_o catholic_n church_n p._n d._n what_o then_o so_o be_v the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n of_o antioch_n and_o alexandria_n and_o so_o be_v the_o seven_o church_n of_o asia_n be_v all_o these_o head_n and_o fountain_n too_o r._n p._n but_o s._n paul_n speak_v of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n p._n d._n he_o do_v so_o but_o not_o much_o to_o her_o comfort_n for_o he_o suppose_v she_o may_v be_v break_v off_o through_o unbelief_n as_o well_o as_o any_o other_o church_n r._n p._n do_v not_o s._n paul_n say_v that_o the_o roman_a faith_n be_v speak_v of_o throughout_o the_o world_n p._n d._n what_o then_o i_o beseech_v you_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o faith_n must_v always_o continue_v the_o same_o any_o more_o than_o that_o the_o church_n of_o philadelphia_n must_v at_o this_o day_n be_v what_o it_o be_v when_o s._n john_n write_v those_o great_a commendation_n of_o it_o these_o be_v such_o slender_a proof_n that_o you_o have_v as_o good_a come_v to_o downright_o beg_v the_o cause_n as_o pretend_v to_o maintain_v it_o after_o such_o a_o manner_n
be_v we_o not_o like_a to_o meet_v with_o very_o hopeful_a demonstration_n in_o the_o scientifical_a way_n from_o he_o but_o i_o have_v one_o argument_n yet_o more_o to_o prove_v there_o be_v no_o such_o change_n as_o to_o this_o matter_n in_o archbishop_n laud_n time_n which_o be_v from_o the_o convocation_n a._n d._n 1640._o wherein_o no_o one_o question_n the_o influence_n and_o direction_n of_o archbishop_n laud_n and_o the_o concurrence_n of_o those_o of_o his_o party_n as_o t._n g._n call_v they_o and_o yet_o in_o that_o very_a book_n of_o pet._n heylin_n 435·_n he_o may_v have_v see_v that_o canon_n wherein_o they_o acknowledge_v the_o idolatry_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o t._n g._n can_v not_o pretend_v any_o ignorance_n of_o this_o for_o dr._n st._n have_v quote_v this_o very_a canon_n to_o this_o purpose_n to_o show_v that_o this_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o archbishop_n bishop_n and_o clergy_n in_o convocation_n so_o late_o and_o so_o long_o after_o the_o first_o heat_n of_o the_o reformation_n but_o what_o answer_n do_v t._n g._n give_v to_o this_o which_o be_v so_o material_a a_o testimony_n and_o so_o destructive_a to_o all_o he_o say_v upon_o this_o matter_n r._n p._n i_o do_v not_o remember_v he_o take_v notice_n of_o it_o but_o if_o you_o please_v i_o will_v look_v for_o i_o have_v his_o book_n about_o i_o p._n d._n not_o take_v notice_n of_o it_o it_o be_v impossible_a what!_o do_v he_o pretend_v to_o answer_v and_o pass_v by_o the_o plain_a and_o strong_a argument_n as_o if_o they_o have_v never_o be_v bring_v this_o be_v a_o very_a satisfactory_a way_n of_o answer_v and_o become_v the_o ingenuity_n of_o t._n g._n but_o i_o pray_v sir_n look_v again_o i_o be_o afraid_a you_o wrong_v he_o i_o suppose_v you_o never_o read_v dr._n st.'s_n book_n but_o only_o the_o answer_n to_o they_o and_o then_o i_o do_v not_o wonder_v you_o applaud_v the_o answer_n if_o they_o leave_v out_o the_o hard_a argument_n r._n p._n you_o have_v a_o little_a startle_v i_o with_o this_o omission_n i_o have_v turn_v over_o all_o the_o leave_n which_o relate_v to_o this_o matter_n very_o careful_o and_o i_o can_v find_v one_o word_n about_o it_o sure_o it_o be_v a_o involuntary_a omission_n p._n d._n how_o can_v that_o be_v involuntary_a when_o it_o be_v produce_v and_o urge_v with_o great_a force_n to_o show_v that_o this_o be_v no_o puritanical_a charge_n no_o heat_n at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o reformation_n no_o private_a opinion_n of_o particular_a person_n but_o the_o sense_n of_o our_o whole_a church_n representative_a even_o in_o a._n d._n 1640._o r._n p._n i_o confess_v i_o know_v not_o what_o to_o say_v more_o for_o he_o but_o that_o it_o be_v a_o omission_n p.d._n no_o sir_n that_o be_v not_o all_o for_o there_o be_v a_o fault_n of_o commission_n too_o for_o he_o do_v not_o only_o leave_v out_o this_o but_o he_o advance_v a_o hypothesis_n which_o he_o may_v easy_o see_v the_o falsehood_n of_o from_o this_o single_a testimony_n viz._n that_o the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n be_v only_o a_o heat_n of_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o reformation_n which_o be_v disow_v in_o the_o time_n of_o k._n charles_n and_o archbishop_n laud_n when_o at_o the_o same_o time_n he_o can_v not_o but_o see_v the_o plain_a evidence_n to_o the_o contrary_a by_o the_o convocation_n of_o a._n d._n 1640._o be_v your_o cause_n to_o be_v support_v only_o by_o such_o trick_n as_o these_o r._n p._n you_o be_v too_o like_o dr._n st._n who_o t._n g._n charge_n with_o be_v too_o tragical_a upon_o such_o slight_a occasion_n 28._o and_o fling_v and_o lay_v about_o he_o unreasonable_o for_o a_o thing_n of_o nothing_o as_o when_o t._n g._n mistake_v robert_n abbot_n for_o george_n p._n d._n call_v you_o this_o a_o thing_n of_o nothing_o methinks_v it_o be_v rather_o make_v nothing_o of_o a_o very_a substantial_a thing_n as_o to_o the_o other_o mistake_n i_o suppose_v we_o shall_v hear_v of_o it_o ere_o long_o i_o pray_v let_v we_o proceed_v in_o order_n r._n p._n dr._n st.'s_n three_o argument_n be_v from_o the_o rubric_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o communion_n the_o word_n be_v these_o whereas_o it_o be_v ordain_v in_o this_o office_n for_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n that_o the_o communicant_n shall_v receive_v the_o same_o kneel_v f.c._n hold_v there_o i_o pray_v what_o receive_v the_o communion_n kneel_v give_v i_o leave_v to_o come_v in_o now_o for_o i_o perceive_v you_o be_v hard_o press_v and_o we_o ought_v to_o give_v friendly_a assistance_n to_o one_o another_o against_o these_o church_n of_o england-man_n and_o therefore_o i_o will_v prove_v they_o guilty_a of_o idolatry_n in_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n kneel_v p._n d._n this_o will_v be_v a_o digression_n but_o i_o always_o owe_v so_o much_o service_n to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o to_o be_v ready_a to_o defend_v it_o from_o so_o unjust_a a_o charge_n therefore_o to_o your_o business_n f._n c._n mr._n case_n in_o his_o sermon_n before_o the_o long_a parliament_n at_o a_o general_n fast_o on_o such_o a_o day_n say_v thus_o p._n d._n i_o pray_v sir_n speak_v to_o the_o point_n i_o be_o not_o now_o at_o leisure_n to_o hear_v mr._n case_n sermon_n repeat_v f._n c._n i_o hope_v you_o will_v not_o interrupt_v i_o p._n d._n not_o when_o you_o speak_v to_o the_o business_n do_v you_o understand_v what_o idolatry_n be_v f._n c._n that_o be_v a_o question_n to_o be_v ask_v indeed_o as_o though_o i_o do_v not_o know_v what_o the_o cup_n of_o fornication_n mean_n that_o be_v idolatry_n and_o to_o bow_v at_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n and_o to_o bow_v to_o the_o altar_n that_o be_v idolatry_n do_v you_o think_v i_o do_v not_o know_v what_o idolatry_n be_v methinks_v you_o shall_v have_v more_o reverence_n for_o a_o man_n of_o my_o year_n than_o to_o ask_v i_o such_o a_o saucy_a question_n have_v i_o preach_v this_o thirty_o year_n and_o more_o in_o the_o army_n and_o in_o private_a congregation_n and_o live_v to_o be_v ask_v such_o a_o question_n by_o you_o sir_n i_o know_v what_o idolatry_n be_v before_o you_o be_v bear_v p._n d._n then_o i_o hope_v you_o can_v tell_v i_o now_o i_o be_o of_o age_n to_o understand_v it_o f._n c._n why_o have_v i_o not_o tell_v you_o already_o p._n d._n i_o pray_v sir_n let_v we_o talk_v calm_o and_o understand_v one_o another_o which_o we_o shall_v never_o do_v unless_o we_o agree_v what_o be_v idolatry_n i_o pray_v give_v i_o the_o definition_n of_o it_o f._n c._n the_o definition_n when_o i_o be_v a_o young_a man_n as_o you_o be_v i_o have_v as_o many_o definition_n in_o my_o head_n as_o any_o body_n but_o we_o that_o be_v upon_o constant_a duty_n of_o another_o nature_n can_v trouble_v our_o head_n with_o definition_n or_o such_o idle_a notion_n but_o alas_o we_o grow_v old_a and_o such_o thing_n be_v soon_o forget_v i_o remember_v in_o my_o young_a day_n i_o read_v bucanus_n polanus_fw-la and_o amesius_n nay_o there_o be_v not_o a_o good_a systeme_n of_o orthodox_n divinity_n to_o be_v have_v but_o i_o read_v it_o and_o note_v it_o but_o i_o lose_v my_o note_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o war_n and_o can_v never_o recover_v they_o p._n d._n this_o be_v a_o little_a off_o from_o our_o business_n i_o hope_v you_o be_v better_o at_o application_n of_o the_o point_n than_o at_o explication_n of_o it_o what_o be_v it_o in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n you_o do_v charge_n with_o idolatry_n f._n c._n kneel_v at_o the_o sacrament_n p._n d._n for_o what_o reason_n f._n c._n stay_v a_o little_a i_o think_v i_o have_v my_o argument_n at_o my_o finger_n end_n but_o see_v how_o strange_o good_a thing_n slip_v out_o of_o our_o memory_n but_o now_o i_o remember_v i_o have_v some_o short_a note_n about_o i_o which_o i_o take_v out_o of_o mr._n gillespie_n idolatry_n of_o the_o english_a popish_a ceremony_n and_o let_v i_o tell_v you_o he_o be_v a_o mighty_a man_n in_o his_o day_n against_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o this_o book_n of_o his_o do_v great_a execution_n upon_o the_o bishop_n in_o scotland_n i_o can_v remember_v how_o much_o it_o affect_v the_o brethren_n in_o england_n and_o how_o we_o compare_v he_o to_o one_o of_o david_n worthy_n that_o kill_v the_o giant_n of_o the_o philistine_n p._n d._n sir_n at_o this_o rate_n of_o talk_v it_o will_v be_v night_n before_o you_o come_v to_o the_o question_n methinks_v you_o seem_v to_o have_v nothing_o to_o say_v against_o we_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n f._n c._n i_o nothing_o to_o say_v against_o you_o who_o ever_o hear_v i_o without_o have_v something_o to_o say_v against_o you_o i_o tell_v you_o sir_n i_o look_v upon_o your_o church_n
as_o the_o young_a sister_n to_o the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n never_o a_o barrel_n the_o better_a herring_n only_o we_o can_v have_v liberty_n of_o conscience_n with_o one_o and_o not_o with_o the_o other_o it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o i_o to_o bow_v to_o a_o image_n and_o to_o bow_v to_o the_o altar_n to_o worship_v image_n and_o to_o kneel_v at_o the_o sacrament_n p._n d._n i_o be_o in_o hope_n you_o be_v now_o come_v to_o the_o point_n i_o pray_v keep_v there_o without_o any_o far_o ramble_v f._n c._n call_v you_o this_o ramble_a you_o know_v amesius_n say_v even_o in_o controvert_v point_n much_o respect_n ought_v to_o be_v have_v to_o the_o experience_n of_o god_n people_n i_o tell_v you_o i_o have_v find_v it_o thus_o with_o i_o and_o you_o ought_v rather_o to_o hear_v i_o teach_v you_o than_o dispute_n with_o i_o p._n d._n all_o this_o shall_v not_o serve_v i_o must_v have_v your_o argument_n since_o you_o urge_v i_o thus_o f._n c._n why_o look_v you_o now_o do_v you_o see_v how_o petulant_a and_o malapert_a these_o divine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v but_o since_o nothing_o will_v satisfy_v you_o but_o argue_v i_o have_v a_o argument_n ready_a for_o you_o will_v do_v your_o business_n to_o worship_v the_o bread_n be_v idolatry_n but_o to_o kneel_v at_o the_o sacrament_n be_v to_o worship_n the_o bread_n ergo._fw-la p._n d._n i_o be_o glad_a to_o find_v you_o come_v to_o any_o kind_n of_o reason_v i_o deny_v that_o in_o kneel_v at_o the_o sacrament_n we_o do_v worship_v the_o bread_n for_o our_o church_n express_o declare_v the_o contrary_a in_o this_o rubric_n f._n c._n what_o do_v i_o care_v for_o your_o church_n or_o her_o rubric_n i_o say_v you_o do_v worship_v the_o bread_n and_o prove_v it_o too_o that_o which_o you_o kneel_v before_o and_o look_v towards_o when_o you_o worship_n you_o do_v give_v the_o worship_n to_o but_o you_o kneel_v before_o and_o look_v towards_o the_o bread_n when_o you_o worship_n ergo._fw-la p._n d._n i_o begin_v to_o be_v afraid_a of_o you_o now_o for_o you_o do_v not_o only_o prove_v by_o this_o argument_n kneel_v at_o the_o sacrament_n but_o read_v the_o common_a prayer_n to_o be_v idolatry_n for_o if_o that_o which_o we_o kneel_v before_o and_o look_v towards_o when_o we_o worship_v must_v be_v the_o object_n of_o our_o worship_n it_o be_v plain_a we_o must_v indeed_o make_v a_o idol_n of_o the_o common_a prayer_n for_o every_o time_n we_o read_v it_o we_o kneel_v before_o it_o and_o look_n towards_o it_o when_o we_o worship_v f._n c._n look_v you_o to_o that_o i_o always_o take_v the_o common_a prayer_n for_o a_o idol_n but_o i_o do_v not_o think_v i_o have_v prove_v it_o now_o p._n d._n i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o undeceive_v you_o in_o this_o matter_n since_o we_o be_v not_o pure_a spirit_n but_o must_v worship_v god_n with_o our_o body_n by_z kneeling_z and_o look_v towards_o something_o in_o our_o act_n of_o worship_n we_o must_v not_o determine_v that_o to_o be_v the_o object_n of_o our_o worship_n which_o our_o body_n be_v bend_v towards_o or_o we_o look_v upon_o in_o our_o worship_n unless_o there_o be_v some_o other_o reason_n for_o it_o for_o then_o idolatry_n will_v be_v necessary_a and_o unavoidable_a for_o we_o can_v kneel_v with_o our_o eye_n open_a but_o we_o must_v look_v upon_o some_o creature_n which_o according_a to_o your_o way_n of_o argue_v must_v be_v the_o object_n of_o our_o worship_n i_o pray_v sir_n without_o be_v angry_a give_v i_o leave_v to_o ask_v you_o whether_o a_o man_n kneel_v in_o the_o field_n and_o pray_v with_o his_o eye_n lift_v up_o to_o heaven_n be_v a_o idolater_n or_o not_o f._n c._n i_o think_v not_o p._n d._n yet_o he_o kneel_v towards_o some_o creature_n and_o look_n upon_o some_o creature_n when_o he_o worship_v therefore_o you_o must_v prove_v by_o some_o other_o way_n that_o we_o do_v make_v the_o bread_n the_o object_n of_o our_o worship_n but_o this_o we_o utter_o deny_v and_o say_v the_o do_v it_o be_v idolatry_n and_o to_o be_v abhor_v of_o all_o faithful_a christian_n and_o will_v you_o make_v we_o worship_v it_o whether_o we_o will_v or_o no_o f._n c._n but_o you_o use_v the_o same_o posture_n which_o the_o papist_n do_v and_o yet_o you_o charge_v they_o with_o idolatry_n p._n d._n because_o this_o be_v a_o thing_n many_o of_o you_o stumble_v at_o i_o will_v make_v the_o difference_n of_o our_o case_n and_o they_o plain_n to_o you_o in_o all_o moral_a act_n we_o be_v to_o have_v a_o great_a great_a regard_n to_o their_o circumstance_n from_o whence_o they_o take_v a_o different_a denomination_n he_o that_o kill_v a_o man_n by_o accident_n and_o he_o that_o kill_v a_o man_n out_o of_o malice_n do_v the_o very_a same_o thing_n as_o to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o act_n yet_o no_o man_n will_v say_v it_o be_v the_o same_o act_n upon_o a_o moral_a consideration_n we_o kneel_v and_o the_o papist_n kneel_v but_o we_o declare_v when_o we_o kneel_v we_o intend_v no_o adoration_n to_o the_o element_n but_o the_o papist_n can_v deny_v that_o they_o do_v give_v proper_a adoration_n to_o that_o which_o be_v before_o they_o which_o we_o say_v be_v bread_n and_o they_o say_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o yet_o not_o mere_o to_o the_o invisible_a body_n of_o christ_n but_o take_v the_o species_n of_o bread_n as_o unite_v to_o that_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o direct_v their_o worship_n to_o these_o two_o together_o as_o the_o proper_a object_n of_o divine_a adoration_n and_o to_o make_v this_o evident_a to_o you_o their_o adoration_n be_v perform_v at_o the_o elevation_n of_o the_o host_n and_o at_o the_o carry_v it_o about_o in_o procession_n and_o at_o the_o expose_v it_o on_o their_o altar_n and_o not_o mere_o in_o the_o participation_n of_o it_o whence_o it_o be_v observable_a that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v not_o strict_o require_v kneel_v at_o the_o participation_n which_o it_o will_v do_v if_o it_o look_v on_o the_o kneel_v at_o receive_v as_o a_o proper_a act_n of_o adoration_n the_o rubric_n of_o the_o mass_n do_v not_o that_o i_o can_v find_v require_v the_o priest_n to_o kneel_v in_o the_o act_n of_o receive_v and_o the_o pope_n when_o he_o celebrate_v receive_v sit_v espencaeus_fw-la say_v in_o the_o church_n of_o lion_n many_o of_o the_o people_n do_v not_o receive_v kneel_v and_o upon_o complaint_n make_v about_o it_o they_o be_v by_o the_o advice_n of_o two_o cardinal_n leave_v to_o their_o old_a custom_n and_o i_o wonder_v your_o brethren_n have_v not_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o difference_n of_o kneel_v at_o the_o elevation_n of_o the_o host_n and_o in_o the_o act_n of_o receive_v it_o the_o one_o be_v require_v by_o the_o constitution_n of_o honorius_n and_o be_v intend_v for_o a_o act_n of_o adoration_n to_o the_o host_n the_o other_o be_v derive_v from_o the_o ancient_a church_n which_o although_o it_o do_v not_o always_o use_v the_o same_o posture_n of_o adoration_n that_o we_o do_v yet_o it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o our_o purpose_n if_o they_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o same_o posture_n in_o which_o they_o worship_v god_n and_o this_o i_o can_v easy_o prove_v if_o this_o be_v a_o place_n or_o season_n for_o it_o f._n c._n well_o sir_n i_o do_v not_o love_v dispute_v i_o pray_v go_v on_o with_o your_o former_a adversary_n r._n p._n sir_n i_o thank_v you_o for_o the_o diversion_n you_o have_v give_v we_o if_o you_o please_v i_o will_v now_o return_v to_o the_o place_n where_o we_o leave_v i_o be_v about_o to_o tell_v you_o the_o answer_n t._n g._n give_v to_o dr._n st.'s_n three_o argument_n from_o the_o rubric_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o communion_n the_o word_n be_v it_o be_v here_o declare_v that_o by_o kneel_v no_o adoration_n be_v intend_v or_o ought_v to_o be_v do_v either_o unto_o the_o sacramental_a bread_n or_o wine_n there_o bodily_a receive_v or_o unto_o any_o corporal_a presence_n of_o christ_n natural_a flesh_n and_o blood_n for_o the_o sacramental_a bread_n and_o wine_n remain_v still_o in_o their_o very_a natural_a substance_n and_o therefore_o may_v not_o be_v adore_v for_o that_o be_v idolatry_n to_o be_v abhor_v of_o all_o faithful_a christian_n and_o the_o natural_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o heaven_n and_o not_o here_o it_o be_v against_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n natural_a body_n to_o be_v at_o one_o time_n in_o more_o place_n than_o one_o about_o which_o dr._n st._n charge_n t._n g._n first_o with_o ignorance_n in_o say_v it_o be_v not_o yet_o above_o a_o dozen_o year_n since_o it_o be_v insert_v into_o the_o communion_n book_n whereas_o he_o may_v have_v
upward_o and_o downward_o forward_o and_o backward_o it_o may_v be_v hot_a in_o one_o place_n and_o cold_a in_o another_o it_o may_v be_v alive_a in_o one_o place_n and_o dead_a in_o another_o and_o which_o be_v the_o high_a contradiction_n one_o will_v think_v by_o force_n of_o this_o principle_n a_o man_n may_v be_v damn_v in_o one_o place_n and_o save_v in_o another_o and_o no_o less_o a_o man_n than_o ysambertus_n have_v defend_v the_o possibility_n of_o this_o upon_o this_o principle_n for_o 8._o say_v he_o a_o man_n as_o in_o one_o place_n may_v be_v kill_v in_o a_o mortal_a sin_n and_o so_o be_v damn_v whereas_o in_o another_o place_n he_o may_v have_v contrition_n and_o absolution_n and_o so_o be_v save_v but_o vasquez_n ask_v a_o untoward_a question_n 28._o suppose_v such_o a_o man_n be_v reduce_v to_o one_o place_n whether_o shall_v he_o be_v save_v or_o damn_v for_o he_o can_v then_o be_v both_o and_o there_o be_v no_o more_o reason_n he_o shall_v be_v put_v out_o of_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n by_o the_o state_n of_o sin_n than_o out_o of_o the_o state_n of_o sin_n by_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n such_o horrible_a contradiction_n do_v man_n run_v into_o rather_o than_o let_v go_v a_o absurd_a hypothesis_n and_o suarez_n confess_v that_o a_o sacramental_a presence_n be_v liable_a to_o the_o same_o contradiction_n because_o that_o suppose_v a_o capacity_n for_o act_n of_o the_o mind_n under_o it_o 4._o i_o say_v that_o assert_v a_o body_n to_o be_v present_a natural_o in_o one_o place_n and_o spiritual_o and_o indivisible_o in_o more_o do_v involve_v more_o contradiction_n in_o it_o than_o to_o be_v present_a in_o several_a place_n after_o a_o natural_a manner_n for_o the_o very_a manner_n of_o a_o body_n be_v present_a indivisible_o carry_v contradiction_n along_o with_o it_o peculiar_a to_o itself_o for_o wherever_o there_o be_v a_o body_n there_o must_v be_v quantity_n and_o wherever_o there_o be_v quantity_n there_o must_v be_v divisibility_n how_o then_o can_v a_o divisible_a body_n be_v indivisible_o present_a if_o they_o say_v it_o be_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o a_o spirit_n that_o do_v by_o no_o mean_n salve_v the_o contradiction_n for_o how_o can_v a_o body_n be_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o a_o spirit_n and_o if_o it_o can_v how_o can_v the_o notion_n of_o body_n and_o spirit_n be_v difference_v from_o each_o other_o if_o actual_a extension_n may_v be_v separate_v from_o a_o body_n why_o not_o quantity_n itself_o why_o may_v not_o divisibility_n be_v separate_v from_o a_o line_n and_o two_o and_o two_o not_o make_v actual_o four_o suppose_v that_o they_o retain_v their_o intrinsic_a aptitude_n to_o do_v it_o what_o become_v of_o the_o difference_n of_o great_a and_o less_o since_o that_o which_o be_v great_a may_v be_v contain_v under_o the_o less_o and_o so_o the_o very_a same_o thing_n will_v be_v great_a or_o less_o great_a and_o not_o great_a than_o itself_o what_o notion_n can_v we_o have_v of_o distance_n since_o here_o a_o body_n be_v suppose_v to_o have_v all_o its_o organical_a part_n head_z breast_n leg_n and_o foot_n and_o yet_o no_o local_a distance_n between_o head_n and_o foot_n r._n p._n i_o see_v it_o be_v a_o dangerous_a thing_n to_o give_v you_o but_o a_o hint_n about_o transubstantiation_n if_o you_o but_o once_o take_v the_o scent_n you_o run_v on_o so_o fast_o that_o it_o be_v a_o very_a hard_a matter_n to_o take_v you_o off_o i_o do_v not_o think_v this_o rubric_n can_v have_v hold_v we_o thus_o long_o but_o i_o see_v you_o be_v resolve_v to_o have_v two_o or_o three_o throw_n at_o transubstantiation_n in_o pass_v though_o i_o warn_v you_o before_o about_o it_o p._n d._n no_o sir_n it_o be_v t._n g.'s_n fix_v such_o a_o absurd_a sense_n upon_o our_o church_n as_o though_o she_o make_v it_o idolatry_n to_o worship_n christ_n body_n as_o present_v after_o a_o corporeal_a manner_n and_o not_o after_o another_o which_o make_v i_o insist_v so_o long_o upon_o this_o r._n p._n what_o say_v my_o fanatic_a acquaintance_n to_o all_o this_o what!_o sleep_v f._n c._n only_o a_o nod_n or_o two_o i_o hearken_v a_o while_n but_o i_o find_v you_o be_v about_o hard_a and_o unsavoury_a notion_n true_o it_o be_v to_o i_o no_o awaken_n discourse_n r._n p._n come_v come_v we_o will_v keep_v you_o wake_v we_o be_v now_o come_v to_o the_o puritan_n cause_n f._n c._n ay_o ay_o there_o be_v some_o life_n in_o that_o r._n p._n what_o think_v you_o was_z robert_z abbot_z bishop_n of_o salisbury_z a_o puritan_n or_o not_o f._n c._n what!_o a_o bishop_n a_o puritan_n a_o good_a one_o i_o warrant_v you_o a_o puritan_n in_o lawn_n sleeve_n a_o puritan_n with_o cross_n and_o surplice_n you_o know_v well_o what_o belong_v to_o a_o puritan_n do_v you_o not_o i_o tell_v you_o there_o never_o be_v a_o true_a puritan_n but_o abhor_v these_o thing_n with_o all_o his_o heart_n what_o do_v you_o tell_v i_o of_o a_o bishop_n of_o salisbury_n for_o a_o puritan_n i_o say_v again_o if_o he_o have_v be_v so_o he_o will_v have_v take_v his_o lawn_n sleeve_n and_o throw_v they_o into_o the_o fire_n p._n d._n but_o i_o pray_v sir_n how_o come_v in_o this_o discourse_n about_o bishop_n abbot_n r._n p._n i_o will_v tell_v you_o among_o other_o divine_n produce_v by_o dr._n st._n to_o prove_v the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n maintain_v against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o k._n james_n his_o time_n one_o be_v bishop_n abbot_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o bishop_n t._n g._n take_v this_o to_o be_v archbishop_n abbot_n and_o except_v against_o he_o as_o a_o abettor_n of_o the_o puritan_n party_n and_o tell_v from_o dr._n heylin_n that_o on_o that_o account_n it_o be_v think_v necessary_a to_o suspend_v he_o from_o his_o metropolitical_a visitation_n dr._n st._n make_v sport_n with_o his_o suspend_v a_o bishop_n of_o salisbury_n from_o metropolitical_a jurisdiction_n and_o tell_v what_o strange_a thing_n those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v do_v with_o five_o word_n and_o upbraid_v t._n g._n with_o ignorance_n of_o our_o church_n and_o in_o truth_n be_v too_o tragical_a upon_o such_o a_o slight_a occasion_n now_o t._n g._n prove_v that_o it_o be_v only_o a_o mistake_n of_o the_o person_n and_o not_o of_o his_o quality_n although_o dr._n st._n say_v that_o he_o be_v never_o till_o now_o suspect_v for_o a_o puritan_n p._n d._n be_v you_o sure_a of_o that_o r._n p._n yes_o t._n g._n say_v so_o 27._o more_o than_o once_o p._n d._n however_o it_o be_v good_a to_o be_v sure_a these_o be_v dr._n st.'s_n word_n the_o two_o first_o he_o except_v against_o be_v the_o two_o archbishop_n whitgift_n and_o abbot_n as_o puritanical_o incline_v but_o as_o it_o unhappy_o fall_v out_o one_o of_o they_o be_v never_o mention_v by_o i_o and_o the_o other_o never_o till_o now_o suspect_v for_o a_o puritan_n i_o pray_v advise_v t._n g._n to_o read_v a_o little_a more_o careful_o before_o he_o confute_v be_v it_o not_o plain_a that_o he_o mean_v archbishop_n abbot_n be_v never_o mention_v by_o he_o and_o archbishop_n whitgift_n be_v never_o till_o now_o suspect_v for_o a_o puritan_n it_o can_v be_v no_o want_n of_o understanding_n in_o t._n g._n to_o make_v he_o thus_o misconstrue_v his_o word_n r._n p._n but_o he_o prove_v he_o be_v puritanical_o incline_v and_o take_v off_o his_o testimony_n p._n d._n how_o do_v he_o prove_v that_o r._n p._n from_o dr._n heylin_n who_o history_n serve_v we_o to_o many_o a_o good_a purpose_n for_o he_o say_v he_o be_v a_o calvinian_a though_o a_o moderate_a one_o that_o he_o be_v a_o enemy_n to_o bishop_n laud_n in_o the_o university_n that_o he_o commend_v mr._n perkins_n and_o write_v his_o last_o book_n of_o grace_n and_o perseverance_n of_o the_o saint_n p._n d._n very_o wonderful_a proof_n as_o though_o many_o of_o the_o stiff_a defender_n of_o our_o church_n against_o the_o puritan_n party_n have_v not_o be_v incline_v to_o calvinism_n as_o it_o be_v call_v in_o the_o point_n of_o predestination_n especial_o in_o that_o moderate_a way_n wherein_o r._n abbot_n assert_v it_o as_o though_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a for_o man_n to_o be_v zealous_a for_o our_o liturgy_n and_o ceremony_n if_o they_o hold_v the_o doctrine_n of_o election_n and_o perseverance_n but_o we_o do_v not_o want_v those_o of_o the_o high_a order_n of_o our_o church_n at_o this_o day_n who_o be_v eminent_a for_o learning_n and_o piety_n and_o zeal_n for_o the_o church_n who_o will_v take_v it_o very_o ill_a from_o t._n g._n upon_o the_o account_n of_o those_o opinion_n to_o be_v think_v enemy_n to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o no_o doubt_n the_o puritan_n be_v but_o t._n g._n run_v on_o with_o this_o perpetual_a mistake_n when_o
his_o own_o author_n dr._n heylin_n have_v tell_v he_o who_o he_o mean_v by_o puritan_n ed._n viz._n the_o nonconformist_n for_o speak_v of_o dr._n buckeridge_n bishop_n laud_n tutor_n he_o say_v that_o he_o oppose_v the_o papist_n on_o one_o hand_n and_o on_o the_o other_o the_o puritan_n or_o nonconformist_n these_o be_v very_o pitiful_a shift_n to_o overthrow_v bishop_n abbot_n testimony_n when_o dr._n heylin_n himself_o say_v of_o he_o 66._o he_o be_v so_o moderate_a a_o calvinian_a that_o he_o incur_v the_o high_a displeasure_n of_o the_o supralapsarian_o who_o have_v till_o then_o carry_v all_o before_o they_o but_o what_o say_v t._n g._n to_o those_o who_o he_o yield_v not_o to_o have_v be_v puritanical_o incline_v and_o yet_o charge_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n with_o idolatry_n r._n p._n he_o say_v they_o do_v not_o impugn_v the_o doctrine_n itself_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o the_o practice_n conformable_a to_o that_o doctrine_n but_o such_o thing_n as_o they_o conceive_v to_o be_v great_a abuse_n in_o the_o practice_n of_o it_o p._n d._n that_o will_v be_v best_a try_v by_o particular_n the_o first_o of_o these_o be_v no_o less_o a_o person_n than_o k._n james_n who_o call_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n damnable_a idolatry_n and_o dr._n st._n show_v that_o k._n james_n take_v off_o their_o distinction_n and_o evasion_n and_o say_v let_v they_o therefore_o that_o maintain_v this_o doctrine_n answer_v it_o to_o christ_n at_o the_o latter_a day_n when_o he_o shall_v accuse_v they_o of_o idolatry_n and_o then_o i_o doubt_v if_o he_o will_v be_v pay_v with_o such_o sophistical_a distinction_n be_v all_o this_o say_v d._n st._n nothing_o but_o to_o charge_v they_o with_o such_o practice_n which_o they_o detest_v do_v he_o not_o mention_v their_o doctrine_n and_o their_o distinction_n do_v not_o k._n james_n understand_v what_o he_o say_v and_o what_o they_o do_v what_o say_v t._n g._n to_o this_o r._n p._n not_o a_o word_n that_o i_o can_v find_v p._n d._n let_v we_o then_o see_v what_o he_o do_v take_v notice_n of_o r._n p._n a_o very_a notable_a thing_n i_o assure_v you_o he_o say_v they_o only_o find_v fault_n with_o some_o abuse_n commit_v in_o our_o church_n 33._o and_o do_v not_o think_v man_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o term_n of_o her_o communion_n force_v either_o to_o hypocrisy_n or_o idolatry_n as_o dr._n st._n do_v so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n if_o true_o state_v out_o of_o the_o decree_n of_o her_o council_n or_o practice_n agreeable_a to_o that_o doctrine_n which_o these_o divine_n impeach_v as_o idolatrous_a but_o the_o opinion_n of_o some_o school-divines_a or_o abuse_v they_o conceive_v to_o be_v commit_v in_o the_o practice_n of_o it_o and_o for_o this_o he_o instance_v in_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a about_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n p._n d._n who_o do_v not_o know_v t._n g._n to_o be_v a_o man_n of_o art_n and_o to_o understand_v the_o way_n of_o fence_v in_o the_o school_n as_o well_o as_o another_o be_v it_o not_o skilful_o do_v in_o this_o place_n to_o run_v to_o the_o point_n of_o image_n when_o we_o have_v be_v so_o late_o upon_o the_o idolatry_n in_o adoration_n of_o the_o host_n as_o it_o be_v declare_v in_o our_o rubric_n for_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v plain_a to_o all_o person_n about_o adoration_n of_o the_o host_n at_o the_o elevation_n of_o it_o and_o carry_v it_o about_o but_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o image_n they_o endeavour_v to_o palliate_v and_o disguise_v their_o allow_a practice_n as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v i_o answer_v therefore_o on_o behalf_n of_o dr._n st._n 1._o that_o when_o he_o speak_v of_o what_o man_n be_v oblige_v to_o do_v by_o virtue_n of_o communion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n he_o speak_v of_o the_o thing_n strict_o require_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o that_o church_n and_o since_o our_o church_n declare_v the_o mass_n idolatrous_a he_o do_v not_o in_o the_o least_o recede_v from_o the_o sense_n of_o our_o church_n in_o the_o disjunction_n he_o use_v either_o of_o hypocrisy_n or_o idolatry_n and_o i_o have_v some_o reason_n to_o believe_v that_o be_v the_o thing_n he_o aim_v at_o chief_o when_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o term_n of_o communion_n because_o he_o have_v often_o hear_v of_o some_o person_n who_o live_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o that_o church_n who_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o make_v the_o same_o profession_n which_o ecclesiastical_a person_n be_v do_v content_a themselves_o with_o do_v the_o same_o external_a act_n which_o other_o do_v but_o with_o a_o very_a different_a intention_n who_o look_v upon_o transubstantiation_n and_o many_o other_o doctrine_n as_o foolish_a and_o ridiculous_a and_o yet_o think_v they_o may_v join_v with_o those_o who_o do_v believe_v they_o in_o all_o external_a act_n of_o worship_n rather_o than_o break_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n they_o live_v in_o such_o person_n will_v say_v they_o never_o worship_v the_o host_n and_o therefore_o excuse_v themselves_o from_o idolatry_n but_o dr._n st._n say_v they_o can_v then_o excuse_v themselves_o from_o hypocrisy_n because_o they_o seem_v to_o give_v the_o same_o worship_n which_o the_o other_o do_v 2._o as_o to_o the_o idolatry_n commit_v in_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n we_o shall_v consider_v that_o in_o its_o proper_a place_n but_o yet_o by_o virtue_n of_o communion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n all_o person_n be_v 1._o bind_v to_o declare_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n lawful_a as_o it_o be_v practise_v in_o that_o church_n 2._o to_o worship_v image_n upon_o occasion_n offer_v as_o in_o procession_n etc._n etc._n 3._o to_o worship_v the_o cross_n as_o it_o represent_v christ_n with_o that_o worship_n which_o be_v proper_a to_o his_o person_n that_o which_o concern_v we_o now_o be_v to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o judgement_n of_o these_o person_n how_o far_o they_o suppose_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o idolatry_n commit_v in_o it_o as_o to_o k._n james_n we_o have_v see_v already_o how_o far_a t._n g._n be_v from_o answer_v his_o testimony_n the_o next_o be_v isabella_n casaubon_n and_o he_o say_v the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v affirm_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v join_v with_o great_a impiety_n so_o that_o he_o speak_v the_o sense_n of_o our_o church_n and_o not_o bare_o his_o own_o and_o sure_o when_o he_o write_v by_o k._n james_n his_o direction_n and_o order_n and_o have_v so_o great_a intimacy_n with_o bishop_n andrews_n and_o other_o learned_a man_n of_o our_o church_n he_o will_v declare_v nothing_o to_o be_v her_o sense_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o it_o and_o as_o to_o his_o own_o private_a opinion_n i_o can_v tell_v t._n g._n somewhat_o more_o viz._n that_o when_o he_o be_v violent_o set_v upon_o by_o all_o the_o wit_n and_o industry_n of_o card._n perron_n and_o disoblige_v by_o some_o person_n of_o his_o own_o communion_n at_o paris_n he_o set_v himself_o serious_o to_o consider_v the_o term_n of_o communion_n in_o that_o church_n and_o whether_o he_o may_v with_o a_o safe_a conscience_n embrace_v it_o and_o i_o have_v see_v in_o his_o own_o hand-writing_n the_o reason_n which_o hinder_v he_o from_o it_o and_o the_o first_o of_o they_o be_v the_o fear_n of_o idolatry_n which_o he_o see_v practise_v in_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n and_o saint_n which_o be_v as_o full_a a_o proof_n as_o may_v be_v that_o he_o do_v not_o think_v any_o person_n can_v embrace_v the_o communion_n of_o that_o church_n without_o hypocrisy_n or_o idolatry_n as_o to_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n and_o saint_n the_o three_o be_v bishop_n andrews_n who_o not_o only_o charge_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n with_o idolatry_n but_o he_o say_v that_o in_o their_o breviaries_n hour_n and_o rosary_n they_o pray_v direct_o absolute_o and_o final_o to_o saint_n and_o not_o mere_o to_o the_o saint_n to_o pray_v to_o god_n for_o they_o but_o give_v what_o they_o pray_v for_o themselves_o to_o this_o t._n g._n say_v they_o profess_v they_o do_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o though_o we_o be_v inquire_v what_o they_o profess_v and_o not_o what_o bishop_n andrews_n charge_v they_o with_o if_o idolatry_n according_a to_o bishop_n andrews_n be_v require_v in_o the_o authorize_v office_n of_o devotion_n in_o their_o church_n how_o can_v the_o member_n of_o it_o be_v excuse_v either_o from_o hyocrisie_n or_o idolatry_n the_o four_o be_v dr._n field_n who_o charge_v the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n with_o such_o superstition_n and_o idolatry_n as_o can_v be_v excuse_v the_o five_o dr._n jackson_n who_o say_v the_o papist_n give_v divine_a honour_n to_o image_n the_o six_o archbishop_n laud_n who_o
not_o only_o affirm_v the_o modern_a church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v too_o like_a to_o paganism_n in_o the_o adoration_n of_o image_n but_o condemn_v the_o pray_n to_o angel_n as_o the_o idolatry_n condemn_v by_o the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n as_o dr._n st._n show_v from_o his_o m_n s._n note_n upon_o bellarmine_n to_o these_o dr._n st._n add_v in_o his_o general_n preface_n the_o testimony_n of_o archbishop_n bancroft_n bishop_n montague_n pet._n heylin_n and_o mr._n thorndike_n which_o three_o last_n be_v the_o very_a person_n t._n g._n do_v appeal_n to_o and_o the_o last_o of_o they_o do_v declare_v that_o the_o practice_n of_o idolatry_n be_v such_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o no_o good_a christian_n dare_v trust_v his_o soul_n in_o the_o communion_n of_o it_o which_o be_v all_o one_o as_o to_o say_v they_o must_v be_v guilty_a of_o hypocrisy_n or_o idolatry_n r._n p._n but_o t._n g._n say_v they_o only_o reprove_v some_o practice_n as_o idolatrous_a or_o at_o least_o in_o danger_n to_o be_v such_o but_o dr._n st._n acknowledge_v that_o they_o excuse_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n from_o idolatry_n although_o not_o all_o who_o live_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o it_o p._n d._n do_v he_o indeed_o say_v so_o or_o be_v this_o another_o piece_n of_o t._n g.'s_n fineness_n his_o word_n be_v these_o and_o although_o it_o may_v be_v only_o a_o excess_n of_o charity_n in_o some_o few_o learned_a person_n to_o excuse_v that_o church_n from_o idolatry_n although_o not_o all_o who_o live_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o it_o and_o then_o produce_v the_o seventeen_o testimony_n to_o show_v he_o do_v not_o differ_v from_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n or_o the_o eminent_a defender_n of_o it_o ever_o since_o the_o reformation_n and_o do_v you_o think_v that_o among_o his_o testimony_n he_o will_v produce_v any_o who_o he_o think_v to_o free_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n from_o idolatry_n no_o certain_o but_o i_o suppose_v that_o clause_n refer_v to_o mr._n thorndike_n and_o some_o few_o other_o and_o as_o to_o mr._n thorndike_n he_o afterward_o produce_v the_o passage_n before_o mention_v out_o of_o some_o paper_n write_v by_o he_o a_o little_a before_o his_o death_n what_o say_v t._n g._n to_o that_o r._n p._n not_o a_o word_n more_o but_o i_o find_v he_o make_v use_v of_o mr._n thorndikes_n name_n on_o all_o occasion_n as_o if_o he_o favour_v our_o side_n against_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o dr._n st._n and_o the_o man_n who_o manage_v the_o dialogue_n against_o he_o be_v bring_v in_o as_o one_o of_o mr._n thorndikes_n principle_n i_o pray_v tell_v i_o be_v not_o he_o a_o man_n in_o his_o heart_n of_o our_o church_n and_o only_o live_v in_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o you_o p._n d._n d._n st._n have_v give_v a_o just_a character_n of_o he_o when_o he_o call_v he_o a_o man_n of_o excellent_a learning_n and_o great_a piety_n and_o since_o so_o ill_a use_n be_v make_v of_o his_o name_n in_o these_o dispute_n and_o such_o dishonour_n do_v to_o his_o memory_n i_o shall_v but_o do_v he_o right_o to_o let_v you_o understand_v what_o his_o judgement_n be_v of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o he_o deliver_v in_o a_o paper_n to_o a_o lady_n a_o little_a before_o his_o death_n from_o who_o it_o come_v immediate_o to_o my_o hand_n and_o be_v the_o same_o paper_n dr._n st._n do_v refer_v to_o 1._o the_o truth_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o of_o the_o scripture_n be_v presuppose_v to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n and_o therefore_o can_v depend_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o it_o 2._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n maintain_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o present_a church_n to_o be_v infallible_a which_o be_v false_a and_o yet_o concern_v the_o salvation_n of_o all_o that_o believe_v it_o therefore_o no_o man_n can_v submit_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o it_o 3._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o s._n jeroms_n time_n do_v not_o make_v void_a the_o baptism_n of_o those_o sect_n which_o do_v not_o baptise_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o that_o baptism_n be_v void_a and_o true_a baptism_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n therefore_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n may_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o salvation_n 4._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n may_v err_v in_o schism_n follow_v the_o wrong_a cause_n if_o you_o except_v only_a thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o be_v believe_v this_o show_v that_o infallibility_n only_o in_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v not_o enough_o it_o be_v destructive_a to_o salvation_n to_o follow_v the_o wrong_a cause_n in_o schism_n instance_n the_o schism_n with_o the_o greek_a church_n for_o appeal_n to_o rome_n for_o there_o be_v evident_a tradition_n to_o the_o contrary_n 5._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n enjoin_v apocryphal_a scripture_n to_o be_v esteem_v canonical_a scripture_n but_o this_o injunction_n be_v contrary_a to_o tradition_n and_o truth_n and_o concern_v the_o salvation_n of_o all_o that_o receive_v it_o 6._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o s._n jeroms_n time_n do_v not_o receive_v the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n for_o canonical_a scripture_n as_o now_o it_o do_v and_o as_o in_o truth_n it_o be_v therefore_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n may_v err_v in_o declare_v the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n 7._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v err_v in_o teach_v that_o attrition_n be_v turn_v into_o contrition_n by_o submit_v to_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n but_o this_o error_n be_v destructive_a to_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o that_o believe_v it_o therefore_o it_o may_v err_v in_o matter_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n that_o it_o be_v a_o error_n because_o of_o the_o condition_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n which_o be_v before_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n and_o therefore_o can_v depend_v on_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n 8._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n enjoin_v to_o believe_v transubstantiation_n and_o to_o profess_v that_o which_o be_v false_a for_o there_o be_v scripture_n and_o tradition_n for_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n but_o neither_o scripture_n nor_o tradition_n for_o transubstantiation_n viz._n for_o abolish_n the_o element_n but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n enjoin_v to_o believe_v it_o therefore_o it_o enjoin_v to_o believe_v that_o for_o which_o there_o be_v neither_o tradition_n nor_o scripture_n witness_v the_o father_n that_o own_o the_o element_n after_o consecration_n 9_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n enjoin_v to_o believe_v that_o christ_n institute_v a_o new_a passeover_n to_o be_v sacrifice_v as_o well_o as_o represent_v commemorate_a and_o offer_v in_o the_o eucharist_n the_o sacrific_a missae_fw-la cap._n 1._o which_o be_v false_a for_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n cross_n be_v commemorate_a represent_v and_o offer_v as_o ready_a to_o be_v slay_v in_o and_o by_o the_o eucharist_n but_o not_o slay_v and_o therefore_o not_o sacrifice_v in_o it_o and_o by_o celebrate_v it_o and_o therefore_o when_o it_o be_v say_v there_o c._n 11._o quod_fw-la in_o missa_fw-la christus_fw-la incruentè_fw-fr immolatur_fw-la if_o it_o be_v mean_v proper_o it_o be_v a_o contradiction_n for_o that_o which_o have_v blood_n be_v not_o sacrifice_v but_o by_o shed_v the_o blood_n of_o it_o if_o figurative_o it_o signify_v no_o more_o than_o that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v that_o it_o be_v represent_v commemorate_a and_o offer_v as_o slay_v and_o therefore_o all_o part_n agree_v to_o this_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n require_v more_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o schism_n that_o come_v by_o refuse_v it_o for_o the_o propitiation_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v the_o propitiation_n of_o christ_n cross_n purchase_v for_o they_o that_o be_v qualify_v 10._o the_o council_n of_o trent_n commend_v the_o mass_n without_o the_o communion_n cap._n 6._o wherein_o it_o err_v for_o the_o communion_n be_v the_o restore_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o baptism_n after_o sin_n the_o want_n of_o it_o without_o the_o desire_n of_o it_o be_v to_o be_v lament_v not_o commend_v as_o destructive_a of_o the_o mean_n of_o salvation_n 11._o there_o be_v neither_o scripture_n nor_o tradition_n for_o pray_v to_o saint_n depart_v or_o any_o evidence_n that_o they_o hear_v our_o prayer_n therefore_o it_o evidence_n a_o carnal_a hope_n that_o god_n will_v abate_v of_o the_o covenant_n of_o our_o baptism_n which_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o our_o salvation_n for_o their_o sake_n 12._o to_o pray_v to_o they_o for_o those_o thing_n which_o only_a god_n can_v give_v as_o all_o papist_n do_v be_v by_o the_o proper_a sense_n of_o their_o word_n downright_a idolatry_n if_o they_o say_v their_o meaning_n be_v by_o a_o figure_n only_o to_o desire_v they_o to_o procure_v their_o request_n of_o god_n how_o dare_v any_o
suspect_v for_o a_o puritan_n at_o that_o time_n when_o many_o of_o the_o great_a antipuritan_n be_v zealous_a defender_n of_o those_o opinion_n in_o all_o q._n elizabeth_n time_n and_o after_o the_o name_n of_o puritan_n signify_v the_o opposer_n of_o our_o government_n and_o the_o service_n and_o order_n of_o our_o church_n and_o some_o have_v undertake_v to_o name_v the_o person_n who_o first_o apply_v this_o name_n to_o the_o asserter_n of_o these_o doctrinal_a point_n towards_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o k._n james_n this_o be_v certain_a which_o be_v most_o material_a to_o our_o purpose_n that_o when_o k._n charles_n i._o publish_v his_o declaration_n to_o prevent_v unnecessary_a disputation_n about_o these_o point_n he_o say_v that_o they_o do_v all_o agree_n in_o the_o true_a usual_a literal_a meaning_n of_o the_o say_a article_n of_o our_o church_n 189._o and_o that_o even_o in_o those_o curious_a point_n in_o which_o the_o present_a difference_n lie_v man_n of_o all_o sort_n take_v the_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o be_v for_o they_o which_o be_v a_o argument_n again_o none_o of_o they_o intend_v any_o desertion_n of_o the_o article_n establish_v and_o which_o be_v a_o certain_a argument_n that_o even_o at_o that_o time_n no_o man_n be_v charge_v with_o disaffection_n to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n mere_o on_o the_o account_n of_o these_o doctrinal_a point_n r._n p._n but_o what_o be_v it_o which_o archbishop_n whitgift_n say_v for_o t._n g._n say_v even_o that_o will_v involve_v he_o more_o in_o the_o suspicion_n of_o puritanism_n p._n d._n his_o word_n be_v these_o i_o do_v as_o much_o mislike_v the_o distinction_n of_o the_o papist_n and_o the_o intent_n of_o it_o as_o any_o man_n do_v neither_o do_v i_o go_v about_o to_o excuse_v they_o from_o wicked_a and_o without_o repentance_n and_o god_n singular_a mercy_n damnable_a idolatry_n this_o be_v enough_o to_o dr._n st.'s_n purpose_n and_o afterward_o he_o say_v he_o place_v the_o papist_n among_o wicked_a and_o damnable_a idolater_n be_v not_o this_o home_n do_v you_o think_v r._n p._n but_o do_v not_o he_o say_v that_o one_o kind_n of_o idolatry_n be_v when_o the_o true_a god_n be_v worship_v by_o other_o mean_n and_o way_n than_o he_o have_v prescribe_v or_o will_v be_v worship_v and_o according_a to_o dr._n st._n this_o be_v the_o fundamental_a principle_n of_o those_o who_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n of_o england_n etc._n that_o nothing_o be_v lawful_a in_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n but_o what_o he_o have_v express_o command_v therefore_o according_a to_o dr._n st._n himself_o archbishop_n whitgift_n be_v a_o puritan_n p._n d._n it_o be_v notable_o argue_v i_o confess_v and_o thence_o it_o follow_v if_o archbishop_n whitgift_n have_v understand_v the_o force_n of_o his_o own_o principle_n he_o must_v have_v separate_v from_o the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o be_v it_o not_o plain_a to_o the_o common_a sense_n of_o any_o man_n that_o archbishop_n whitgift_n write_v on_o behalf_n of_o our_o ceremony_n and_o against_o this_o very_a principle_n in_o t._n g._n his_o word_n can_v not_o bear_v that_o meaning_n and_o therefore_o dr._n st._n have_v great_a reason_n to_o say_v that_o his_o meaning_n in_o those_o word_n be_v against_o his_o express_a command_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o application_n of_o they_o so_o that_o either_o you_o must_v make_v archbishop_n whitgift_n so_o weak_a a_o man_n as_o to_o overthrow_v the_o design_n of_o his_o whole_a book_n or_o this_o must_v be_v his_o meaning_n which_o dr._n st._n assign_v r._n p._n but_o dr._n st._n himself_o make_v the_o charge_v papist_n to_o be_v idolater_n ●7_n a_o distinctive_a sign_n of_o puritanism_n p._n d._n be_v you_o in_o earnest_n i_o pray_v when_o and_o where_o for_o than_o i_o be_o sure_a he_o contradict_v himself_o for_o his_o design_n be_v to_o prove_v just_a the_o contrary_n name_v i_o the_o page_n i_o beseech_v you_o that_o i_o may_v judge_v of_o it_o r._n p._n why_o do_v he_o not_o say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o fundamental_a principle_n of_o puritanism_n that_o nothing_o be_v lawful_a in_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n but_o what_o he_o have_v express_o command_v p._n d._n and_o what_o then_o r._n p._n then_o hold_v a_o little_a then_o it_o will_v not_o do_v p._n d._n i_o think_v not_o true_o if_o this_o be_v the_o fundamental_a principle_n of_o puritan_n that_o nothing_o be_v lawful_a in_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n but_o what_o be_v command_v then_o to_o charge_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n with_o idolatry_n be_v a_o distinctive_a sign_n of_o puritanism_n how_o many_o cord_n be_v necessary_a to_o tie_v these_o two_o together_o 1._o can_v no_o one_o charge_v the_o papist_n with_o idolatry_n but_o by_o virtue_n of_o this_o principle_n i_o do_v hold_v whatever_o god_n have_v not_o forbid_v to_o be_v lawful_a in_o his_o worship_n but_o may_v not_o i_o at_o the_o same_o time_n hold_v some_o kind_n of_o prohibit_v worship_n to_o be_v idolatry_n i_o can_v hardly_o imagine_v a_o man_n of_o t._n g.'s_n subtlety_n can_v write_v thus_o but_o that_o you_o have_v the_o book_n by_o you_o and_o tell_v i_o so_o i_o can_v not_o have_v believe_v it_o 2._o those_o who_o do_v hold_v this_o principle_n do_v not_o present_o make_v every_o thing_n unlawful_a to_o be_v a_o idol_n by_o virtue_n of_o it_o for_o they_o do_v not_o deduce_v this_o unlawfulness_n from_o the_o prohibition_n of_o idolatry_n but_o from_o the_o perfection_n and_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o a_o rule_n of_o worship_n and_o they_o say_v we_o must_v not_o add_v thereto_o and_o therefore_o no_o humane_a invention_n must_v be_v use_v in_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n now_o judge_v you_o whether_o according_a to_o this_o principle_n there_o can_v be_v nothing_o unlawful_a but_o it_o must_v be_v a_o idol_n r._n p._n this_o be_v a_o oversight_n i_o suppose_v in_o he_o let_v it_o pass_v but_o what_o make_v d._n st._n vary_v so_o much_o from_o his_o old_a principle_n in_o his_o irenicum_fw-la wherein_o he_o assert_v that_o nothing_o be_v lawful_a in_o the_o immediate_a worship_n of_o god_n 49._o but_o what_o be_v command_v this_o must_v come_v either_o from_o a_o great_a light_n of_o the_o spirit_n or_o from_o the_o weighty_a consideration_n mention_v by_o the_o patronus_fw-la bonae_fw-la fidei_fw-la when_o he_o say_v 76._o quicquid_fw-la cl._n stilling-fleet_n delinitus_fw-la &_o occaecatus_fw-la opimitate_fw-la &_o obesitate_fw-la suorum_fw-la sacerdotiorum_fw-la etc._n etc._n p._n d._n for_o the_o malicious_a suggestion_n of_o so_o wretched_a a_o calumniator_n as_o the_o patronus_fw-la bonae_fw-la fidei_fw-la appear_v to_o be_v throughout_o that_o book_n they_o be_v not_o worth_a take_v notice_n of_o by_o any_o one_o that_o do_v not_o search_v for_o dunghill_n it_o be_v dr._n st.'s_n honour_n to_o be_v reproach_v by_o a_o man_n who_o have_v make_v it_o his_o business_n to_o reproach_v the_o best_a church_n in_o christendom_n and_o to_o undermine_v all_o church_n above_o thirty_o year_n and_o yet_o the_o ungrateful_a creature_n have_v in_o some_o measure_n live_v upon_o the_o revenue_n of_o that_o church_n himself_o which_o he_o have_v so_o shameful_o revile_v be_v in_o great_a part_n support_v by_o the_o bounty_n of_o a_o very_a worthy_a and_o learned_a churchman_n who_o be_v near_o relate_v to_o he_o but_o as_o to_o the_o contradiction_n charge_v on_o dr._n st._n i_o begin_v to_o suspect_v t._n g._n more_o than_o ever_o i_o do_v for_o do_v not_o dr._n st._n in_o that_o place_n distinguish_v between_o immediate_a act_n and_o part_n of_o worship_n and_o circumstance_n belong_v to_o those_o act_n even_o in_o the_o very_a word_n allege_v by_o t._n g._n and_o do_v not_o he_o say_v express_o that_o he_o do_v not_o speak_v of_o these_o 33._o but_o of_o the_o former_a and_o be_v not_o the_o very_a same_o distinction_n use_v by_o bishop_n andrews_n bishop_n sanderson_n and_o the_o most_o zealous_a defender_n of_o the_o rite_n of_o our_o church_n why_o then_o must_v he_o be_v suppose_v to_o have_v change_v his_o mind_n as_o to_o this_o principle_n when_o he_o say_v no_o more_o at_o that_o time_n than_o what_o the_o most_o genuine_a son_n of_o our_o church_n have_v assert_v among_o who_o i_o do_v not_o question_v bishop_n andrews_n and_o bishop_n sanderson_n will_v be_v allow_v to_o pass_v and_o they_o distinguish_v after_o the_o same_o manner_n between_o the_o necessary_a part_n of_o worship_n for_o which_o they_o suppose_v a_o command_n necessary_a as_o well_o as_o dr._n st._n and_o the_o accidental_a and_o mutable_a circumstance_n attend_v the_o same_o for_o order_n comeliness_n and_o edification_n sake_n which_o be_v lawful_a if_o not_o contrary_a to_o god_n command_n and_o do_v not_o dr._n st._n say_v the_o very_a same_o thing_n viz._n that_o in_o matter_n of_o mere_a decency_n and_o
g._n tell_v dr._n st._n the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n do_v for_o by_o virtue_n of_o this_o charge_n he_o say_v the_o church_n of_o england_n remain_v deprive_v of_o the_o lawful_a authority_n to_o use_v and_o exercise_v the_o power_n of_o order_n and_o consequent_o the_o authority_n of_o govern_v preach_a and_o adminstr_v the_o sacrament_n which_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n challenge_n to_o themselves_o as_o derive_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v be_v no_o true_a and_o lawful_a jurisdiction_n but_o usurp_v and_o antichristian_a etc._n this_o i_o assure_v you_o t._n g._n lay_n great_a weight_n upon_o in_o his_o late_a dialogue_n and_o charge_v he_o with_o ignorance_n and_o tergiversation_n and_o other_o hard_a word_n about_o it_o so_o that_o i_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o hear_v what_o you_o can_v say_v in_o his_o defence_n about_o this_o before_o i_o touch_v upon_o the_o other_o consequence_n which_o he_o urge_v upon_o this_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n p._n d._n with_o all_o my_o heart_n there_o be_v two_o thing_n wherein_o the_o force_n of_o t._n g.'s_n argument_n lie_v 1._o that_o which_o he_o call_v his_o undeniable_a maxim_n of_o reason_n viz._n that_o no_o man_n can_v give_v to_o another_o that_o which_o he_o have_v not_o himself_o 2._o that_o idolatry_n lay_v man_n under_o the_o apostle_n excommunication_n and_o therefore_o be_v deprive_v of_o all_o lawful_a authority_n to_o use_v or_o exercise_v the_o power_n of_o order_n in_o answer_n to_o these_o two_o thing_n be_v already_o prove_v by_o dr._n st._n 1._o that_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o giver_n do_v not_o hinder_v the_o validity_n of_o ordination_n 2._o that_o the_o christian_a church_n have_v allow_v the_o lawful_a authority_n of_o give_v and_o exercise_v the_o power_n of_o order_n in_o those_o who_o have_v be_v condemn_v for_o idolatry_n which_o he_o prove_v more_o brief_o in_o his_o preface_n and_o at_o large_a in_o his_o last_o book_n from_o the_o case_n of_o the_o arian_n bishop_n and_o now_o let_v any_o one_o judge_n whether_o t._n g._n have_v any_o cause_n to_o hector_n about_o this_o matter_n for_o so_o many_o page_n together_o as_o though_o he_o have_v either_o not_o understand_v or_o not_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o force_n of_o his_o argument_n concern_v his_o undeniable_a maxim_n of_o reason_n he_o observe_v that_o it_o be_v the_o very_a argument_n use_v by_o the_o donatist_n to_o prove_v the_o nullity_n of_o baptism_n among_o heretic_n and_o that_o the_o answer_v give_v by_o the_o church_n be_v that_o the_o instrument_n be_v not_o the_o giver_n but_o the_o first_o institutor_n and_o if_o the_o minister_n keep_v to_o the_o institution_n the_o grace_n of_o the_o sacrament_n may_v be_v convey_v though_o he_o have_v it_o not_o himself_o this_o dr._n st._n think_v very_o pertinent_a to_o show_v that_o where_o power_n and_o authority_n be_v convey_v by_o man_n only_o as_o instrument_n the_o particular_a default_n of_o such_o person_n as_o heresy_n or_o idolatry_n do_v not_o hinder_v the_o derivation_n of_o that_o power_n or_o authority_n to_o they_o and_o this_o he_o prove_v to_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n in_o the_o ordination_n of_o heretic_n it_o be_v true_a he_o do_v not_o then_o speak_v to_o authority_n so_o much_o as_o to_o power_n nor_o to_o jurisdiction_n as_o it_o be_v call_v by_o the_o school_n divine_v so_o much_o as_o to_o the_o validity_n of_o ordination_n but_o he_o proceed_v upon_o a_o parity_n of_o reason_n in_o both_o case_n and_o can_v not_o imagine_v that_o any_o person_n will_v suppose_v the_o christian_a church_n will_v allow_v a_o validity_n of_o order_n without_o lawful_a authority_n to_o use_v and_o exercise_v those_o order_n for_o in_o all_o the_o instance_n produce_v by_o he_o from_o the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a wherein_o undeniable_a example_n be_v bring_v of_o ordination_n of_o heretic_n allow_v by_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o council_n even_o those_o of_o nice_a ephesus_n and_o chalcedon_n it_o be_v apparent_a that_o their_o authority_n to_o use_v and_o exercise_v their_o power_n of_o order_n be_v allow_v as_o well_o as_o their_o ordination_n for_o he_o there_o show_v that_o anatolius_n the_o precedent_n of_o the_o four_o council_n be_v ordain_v by_o dioscorus_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o eutyches_n that_o many_o of_o the_o bishop_n who_o sit_v in_o the_o six_o council_n be_v ordain_v by_o sergius_n pyrrhus_n paulus_n and_o petrus_n who_o in_o that_o council_n be_v declare_v heretic_n and_o do_v t._n g._n in_o earnest_n think_v this_o do_v not_o prove_v they_o have_v lawful_a authority_n what_o become_v then_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o these_o council_n nay_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n itself_o when_o tarasius_n there_o say_v as_o dr._n st._n produce_v he_o they_o have_v no_o other_o ordination_n for_o fifty_o year_n together_o do_v this_o prove_v either_o dr._n st.'s_n ignorance_n or_o tergiversation_n be_v not_o this_o rather_o plain_a and_o convince_a evidence_n that_o the_o christian_a church_n do_v allow_v not_o bare_o the_o validity_n of_o ordination_n by_o heretic_n but_o the_o lawful_a authority_n to_o use_v and_o exercise_v the_o power_n of_o order_n which_o he_o likewise_o prove_v by_o the_o greek_a ordination_n allow_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n by_o which_o he_o do_v not_o mean_v the_o validity_n of_o the_o bare_a order_n but_o all_o that_o power_n and_o authority_n which_o be_v consequent_a upon_o they_o for_o can_v any_o man_n be_v so_o senseless_a to_o think_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n only_o allow_v the_o sacrament_n of_o order_n among_o the_o greek_n without_o any_o authority_n to_o excommunicate_v or_o absolve_v what_o mean_v then_o these_o horrible_a clamour_n by_o tg_n of_o dr._n st.'s_n ignorance_n intolerable_a mistake_n shameful_a error_n tergiversation_n and_o what_o not_o because_o he_o speak_v only_o to_o the_o validity_n of_o ordination_n and_o not_o to_o the_o lawful_a authority_n of_o exercise_v the_o power_n of_o order_n whereas_o the_o contrary_a appear_v by_o that_o very_a preface_n about_o which_o these_o outcry_n be_v make_v by_o e._n w._n and_o t._n g._n what_o ingenuity_n be_v to_o be_v expect_v from_o these_o man_n who_o deny_v that_o which_o they_o can_v but_o see_v r._n p._n but_o t._n g._n give_v this_o for_o a_o taste_n 132._o not_o only_o what_o candour_n and_o sincerity_n but_o what_o skill_n in_o church-affair_n you_o be_v to_o expect_v in_o the_o rest_n from_o dr._n st._n which_o sure_o he_o will_v never_o have_v do_v if_o he_o have_v speak_v to_o the_o point_n p._n d._n you_o may_v think_v as_o you_o please_v of_o he_o i_o only_o tell_v you_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n and_o then_o do_v you_o judge_v where_o the_o candour_n and_o sincerity_n where_o the_o skill_n in_o church_n affair_n lie_v r._n p._n but_o be_v it_o not_o a_o undeniable_a maxim_n that_o no_o man_n can_v give_v to_o another_o that_o which_o he_o have_v not_o himself_o and_o therefore_o it_o lie_v open_a to_o the_o conscience_n of_o every_o man_n that_o if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v guilty_a of_o heresy_n much_o more_o if_o guilty_a of_o idolatry_n 134._o it_o fall_v under_o the_o apostle_n excommunication_n gal._n 1.8_o and_o so_o remain_v deprive_v of_o the_o lawful_a authority_n to_o use_v and_o exercise_v the_o power_n of_o order_n and_o consequent_o the_o authority_n of_o govern_v preach_a etc._n etc._n this_o you_o see_v bid_v fair_a towards_o the_o subversion_n of_o all_o lawful_a authority_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v guilty_a of_o idolatry_n when_o the_o schism_n begin_v because_o excommunicate_v person_n be_v deprive_v of_o all_o lawful_a authority_n themselves_o can_v give_v none_o to_o other_o and_o if_o those_o other_o take_v any_o upon_o they_o it_o must_v be_v usurp_v and_o unlawful_a p._n d._n this_o be_v the_o terrible_a argument_n which_o t._n g._n produce_v again_o in_o triumph_n as_o though_o nothing_o be_v able_a to_o stand_v before_o it_o and_o yet_o in_o my_o mind_n t._n g._n himself_o have_v mighty_o weaken_v it_o by_o yield_v the_o validity_n of_o ordination_n make_v by_o heretic_n or_o idolater_n for_o if_o no_o man_n can_v give_v that_o which_o he_o have_v not_o how_o can_v those_o give_v power_n and_o authority_n who_o have_v none_o but_o the_o power_n of_o order_n do_v necessary_o carry_v authority_n along_o with_o it_o for_o it_o be_v part_n of_o the_o form_n of_o order_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n accipe_fw-la spiritum_fw-la sanctum_fw-la 4._o quorum_fw-la remiseritis_fw-la etc._n etc._n so_o that_o a_o power_n to_o excommunicate_v and_o absolve_v be_v give_v by_o virtue_n of_o the_o very_a form_n of_o order_n and_o your_o divine_n say_v the_o form_n be_v not_o complete_a without_o it_o but_o then_o i_o pray_v resolve_v i_o these_o question_n
as_o be_v now_o plain_a from_o marcellinus_n and_o faustinus_n who_o book_n be_v publish_v by_o sirmondus_n at_o paris_n where_o sulpitius_n severus_n say_v more_o than_o four_o hundred_o western_a bishop_n be_v present_a who_o be_v all_o excommunicate_v by_o t._n g.'s_n principle_n and_o what_o now_o become_v of_o all_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n but_o dr._n st._n have_v show_v that_o the_o christian_a church_n be_v wise_a than_o to_o proceed_v upon_o t._n g.'s_n principle_n prove_v from_o authentic_a testimony_n of_o antiquity_n that_o the_o arian_n ordination_n be_v allow_v by_o the_o church_n although_o the_o arian_n be_v condemn_v for_o idolater_n r._n p._n 157._o yes_o t._n g._n say_v that_o dr._n st._n be_v resolve_v to_o go_v on_o in_o the_o same_o tract_n still_o and_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o act_n itself_o of_o ordination_n be_v not_o invalid_a in_o case_n of_o the_o idolatry_n of_o the_o giver_n which_o be_v never_o deny_v by_o his_o adversary_n p._n d._n how_o be_v it_o possible_a to_o satisfy_v man_n who_o be_v resolve_v to_o cavil_v do_v not_o dr._n st._n by_o that_o instance_n of_o the_o arian_n bishop_n evident_o prove_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o give_v order_n be_v allow_v by_o the_o christian_a church_n at_o that_o time_n and_o that_o which_o he_o call_v their_o jurisdiction_n as_o well_o as_o the_o power_n of_o order_n because_o nothing_o more_o be_v require_v from_o the_o arian_n bishop_n but_o renounce_v arianism_n and_o subscribe_v the_o nicene_n creed_n and_o thus_o for_o all_o that_o i_o can_v see_v by_o t._n g.'s_n principle_n they_o still_o remain_v under_o st._n paul_n excommunication_n and_o so_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n be_v all_o go_v with_o they_o r._n p._n but_o do_v not_o you_o think_v that_o dr._n st._n have_v some_o secret_a design_n in_o all_o this_o real_o to_o subvert_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n for_o t.g._n lay_v together_o several_a notable_a thing_n to_o that_o purpose_n to_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o he_o purposely_o decline_v 161._o defend_v the_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n i_o assure_v you_o it_o be_v a_o very_a politic_a discourse_n and_o have_v several_a deep_a fetch_n in_o it_o first_o he_o begin_v with_o his_o irenicum_fw-la and_o there_o he_o lay_v the_o foundation_n that_o the_o government_n may_v be_v change_v 2._o the_o book_n be_v reprint_v since_o the_o bishop_n be_v reestablish_v by_o law_n 3._o he_o persuade_v the_o bishop_n in_o that_o book_n to_o reduce_v the_o form_n of_o church_n government_n to_o its_o primitive_a state_n and_o order_n by_o restore_a presbytery_n under_o they_o etc._n etc._n 4._o when_o this_o will_v not_o do_v he_o charge_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n with_o idolatry_n and_o make_v this_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o make_v she_o contribute_v to_o the_o subversion_n of_o her_o own_o authority_n 5._o when_o t._n g._n tell_v he_o of_o the_o consequence_n of_o this_o he_o pass_v it_o by_o as_o if_o he_o see_v it_o not_o and_o trifle_v with_o his_o adversary_n about_o the_o validity_n of_o ordination_n 6._o when_o e._n w._n endeavour_v to_o bring_v he_o to_o this_o point_n he_o still_o decline_v it_o and_o leave_v episcopacy_n to_o shift_v for_o itself_o and_o after_o all_o these_o t._n g._n think_v he_o have_v find_v out_o the_o mole_n that_o work_v under_o ground_n p._n d._n a_o very_a great_a discovery_n i_o assure_v you_o and_o t._n g._n deserve_v a_o great_a reward_n than_o any_o common_a molecatcher_n do_v but_o i_o never_o like_v such_o politic_a informer_n for_o if_o people_n be_v more_o dull_a and_o quiet_a than_o they_o will_v have_v they_o they_o make_v plot_n for_o they_o to_o keep_v up_o their_o reputation_n and_o interest_n they_o must_v have_v always_o something_o to_o whisper_v in_o great_a man_n ear_n and_o to_o fill_v their_o head_n with_o design_n which_o be_v never_o think_v of_o by_o which_o mean_n they_o torment_v they_o with_o unreasonable_a suspicion_n and_o tyrannize_v over_o they_o under_o a_o pretence_n of_o kindness_n just_o thus_o do_v t._n g._n do_v by_o the_o governor_n of_o our_o church_n he_o will_v fain_o persuade_v they_o that_o there_o be_v one_o dr._n st._n who_o have_v undertake_v to_o defend_v the_o church_n but_o do_v carry_v on_o a_o very_a secret_a and_o subtle_a design_n to_o ruin_n and_o destroy_v it_o if_o they_o say_v they_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o he_o seem_v to_o pity_v they_o for_o their_o incredulity_n and_o weakness_n and_o endeavour_n to_o convince_v they_o by_o a_o long_a train_n of_o his_o own_o invention_n and_o if_o they_o be_v so_o easy_a to_o hearken_v to_o it_o and_o to_o regard_v his_o insinuation_n than_o he_o flatter_v and_o applaud_v they_o as_o the_o only_a friend_n to_o the_o church_n when_o in_o the_o meantime_n he_o real_o laugh_v at_o they_o as_o a_o sort_n of_o weak_a man_n who_o can_v be_v impose_v upon_o by_o any_o man_n who_o pretend_v to_o be_v a_o friend_n although_o even_o in_o that_o he_o do_v they_o and_o the_o church_n the_o great_a mischief_n i_o can_v believe_v such_o kind_n of_o insinuation_n as_o these_o can_v prevail_v upon_o any_o one_o man_n of_o understanding_n in_o our_o church_n against_o a_o person_n who_o have_v at_o least_o endeavour_v his_o utmost_a to_o defend_v it_o but_o since_o t._n g._n talk_v so_o politic_o about_o these_o matter_n i_o will_v convince_v you_o by_o one_o argument_n of_o common_a prudence_n that_o if_o dr._n st._n be_v a_o man_n of_o common_a sense_n much_o more_o if_o he_o be_v so_o politic_a and_o design_v as_o t._n g._n represent_v he_o all_o these_o suggestion_n must_v be_v both_o false_a and_o foolish_a for_o that_o which_o all_o design_v man_n aim_v at_o be_v their_o own_o interest_n and_o advantage_n now_o can_v any_o man_n that_o have_v common_a sense_n leave_v in_o he_o imagine_v that_o dr._n st._n can_v aim_v at_o any_o great_a advantage_n by_o ruine_v the_o church_n than_o by_o preserve_v it_o be_v not_o his_o circumstance_n more_o considerable_a in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n than_o ever_o he_o can_v hope_v they_o shall_v be_v if_o it_o be_v destroy_v they_o who_o will_v persuade_v other_o that_o he_o carry_v on_o such_o a_o secret_a design_n must_v suppose_v he_o to_o be_v next_o to_o a_o idiot_n and_o such_o be_v not_o very_o dangerous_a politician_n but_o what_o be_v it_o then_o shall_v make_v he_o act_v so_o much_o against_o his_o interest_n it_o can_v be_v nothing_o but_o folly_n or_o malice_n but_o i_o do_v not_o find_v they_o have_v tax_v he_o of_o any_o malice_n to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n or_o of_o any_o occasion_n for_o it_o which_o the_o church_n have_v give_v he_o if_o he_o be_v dispose_v to_o it_o why_o then_o shall_v any_o be_v so_o senseless_a themselves_o or_o suppose_v other_o to_o be_v so_o as_o to_o go_v about_o to_o possess_v man_n with_o a_o opinion_n of_o a_o underground_n plot_n dr._n st._n be_v carry_v on_o not_o only_o to_o blow_v up_o the_o thames_n but_o the_o rise_a fabric_n of_o st._n paul_n too_o i._n e._n to_o ruin_n and_o destroy_v himself_o if_o he_o be_v a_o fool_n he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v fear_v if_o he_o be_v not_o he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v mistrust_v r.p._n but_o what_o say_v you_o to_o t._n g.'s_n proof_n do_v you_o observe_v the_o several_a molehill_n which_o he_o have_v cast_v up_o and_o be_v not_o that_o a_o sign_n he_o work_v un-derground_a what_o say_v you_o to_o his_o irenicum_fw-la in_o the_o first_o place_n p._n d._n i_o will_v tell_v you_o free_o i_o believe_v there_o be_v many_o thing_n in_o it_o which_o if_o dr._n st._n be_v to_o write_v now_o he_o will_v not_o have_v say_v for_o there_o be_v some_o thing_n which_o show_v his_o youth_n and_o want_v of_o due_a consideration_n other_o which_o he_o yield_v too_o far_o in_o hope_n of_o gain_v the_o dissent_v party_n to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o upon_o the_o whole_a matter_n i_o be_o full_o satisfy_v the_o book_n be_v write_v with_o a_o design_n to_o serve_v the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o the_o design_n of_o it_o i_o take_v to_o be_v this_o that_o among_o we_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n of_o enter_v upon_o nice_a and_o subtle_a dispute_n about_o a_o strict_a jus_o divinum_fw-la of_o episcopacy_n such_o as_o make_v all_o other_o form_n of_o government_n unlawful_a but_o it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o we_o if_o it_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v the_o most_o ancient_a and_o agreeable_a to_o apostolical_a practice_n and_o most_o accommodate_v to_o our_o law_n and_o civil_a government_n and_o there_o can_v be_v no_o pretence_n against_o submit_v to_o it_o but_o the_o demonstrate_v its_o unlawfulness_n which_o he_o know_v be_v impossible_a to_o be_v do_v and_o for_o what_o
repentance_n be_v save_v ans._n it_o be_v answer_v that_o ignorance_n in_o point_n of_o fact_n so_o condition_v as_o have_v be_v show_v do_v so_o excuse_v à_fw-fr toto_fw-la that_o a_o action_n proceed_v thence_o though_o it_o have_v a_o material_a inconformity_n with_o the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v yet_o not_o formal_o a_o sin_n but_o i_o do_v not_o so_o excuse_v the_o idolatry_n of_o our_o forefather_n as_o if_o it_o be_v not_o in_o itself_o a_o sin_n and_o that_o without_o repentance_n damnable_a but_o yet_o their_o ignorance_n be_v such_o as_o it_o be_v nourish_v by_o education_n custom_n tradition_n the_o tyranny_n of_o their_o leader_n the_o fashion_n of_o the_o time_n not_o without_o show_v also_o of_o piety_n and_o devotion_n and_o themselves_o withal_o have_v such_o slender_a mean_n of_o better_a knowledge_n though_o it_o can_v whole_o excuse_v they_o from_o sin_n without_o repentance_n damnable_a yet_o it_o much_o lessen_v and_o qualifi_v the_o sinfulness_n of_o their_o idolatry_n argue_v that_o their_o continuance_n therein_o be_v more_o from_o other_o prejudices_fw-la than_o from_o a_o wilful_a contempt_n of_o god_n holy_a word_n and_o will._n and_o as_o for_o their_o repentance_n it_o be_v as_o certain_a that_o as_o many_o of_o they_o as_o be_v save_v do_v repent_v of_o their_o idolatry_n as_o it_o be_v certain_a no_o idolater_n nor_o other_o sinner_n can_v be_v save_v without_o repentance_n but_o then_o there_o be_v a_o double_a difference_n to_o be_v observe_v between_o repentance_n for_o ignorances_n and_o know_v sin_n the_o one_o must_v be_v particular_a the_o other_o general_a the_o one_o can_v be_v sincere_a without_o forsake_v the_o other_o may_v which_o he_o enlarge_v upon_o and_o then_o conclude_v some_o of_o our_o forefather_n then_o may_v not_o only_o live_v in_o popish_a idolatry_n but_o even_o die_v in_o a_o idolatrous_a act_n breathe_v out_o their_o last_o with_o their_o lip_n at_o a_o crucifix_n and_o a_o ave_fw-la mary_n in_o their_o thought_n and_o yet_o have_v true_o repent_v though_o but_o in_o the_o general_n and_o the_o crowd_n of_o their_o unknown_a sin_n even_o of_o those_o very_a sin_n and_o have_v at_o the_o same_o instant_n true_a faith_n in_o jesus_n christ_n and_o other_o grace_n accompany_v salvation_n r._n p._n but_o have_v not_o christ_n promise_v that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v never_o prevail_v against_o his_o church_n p._n d._n this_o dr._n st._n have_v already_o answer_v thus_o against_o what_o church_n the_o whole_a christian_a church_n whoever_o say_v they_o can_v or_o how_o do_v that_o follow_v the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n or_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n have_v not_o the_o gate_n of_o the_o turk_n be_v too_o strong_a for_o they_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o gate_n of_o hell_n do_v certain_o prevail_v against_o that_o if_o it_o do_v unchurch_n all_o other_o church_n that_o be_v not_o of_o its_o communion_n and_o why_o may_v not_o idolatry_n prevail_v where_o luciferian_a pride_n and_o hellish_a cruelty_n and_o desperate_a wickedness_n have_v long_o since_o prevail_v have_v christ_n make_v promise_n to_o secure_v that_o church_n from_o error_n which_o have_v be_v overrun_v with_o all_o sort_n of_o wickedness_n by_o the_o confession_n of_o her_o own_o member_n and_o friend_n r._n p._n but_o t._n g._n say_v 69._o that_o dr._n st._n ought_v to_o have_v assign_v we_o some_o church_n distinct_a in_o all_o age_n from_o all_o heretical_a and_o idolatrous_a congregation_n which_o christ_n have_v preserve_v always_o from_o heresy_n and_o idolatry_n p._n d._n why_o so_o unless_o he_o have_v first_o yield_v that_o christ_n have_v promise_v to_o preserve_v such_o a_o distinct_a congregation_n of_o christian_n which_o he_o never_o do_v but_o he_o show_v the_o feebleness_n of_o that_o kind_n of_o argue_v from_o particular_n to_o general_n as_o though_o all_o the_o promise_v make_v to_o the_o church_n must_v fail_v if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v guilty_a of_o idolatry_n r._n p._n but_o i_o will_v prove_v that_o dr._n st._n ought_v to_o assign_v such_o a_o distinct_a church_n because_o he_o say_v that_o a_o christian_a by_o virtue_n of_o his_o be_v so_o be_v bind_v to_o join_v in_o some_o church_n or_o congregation_n of_o christian_n therefore_o there_o must_v be_v such_o a_o church_n at_o all_o time_n to_o join_v with_o p._n d._n i_o answer_v 1._o dr._n st.'s_n answer_n do_v imply_v no_o more_o than_o this_o that_o a_o christian_n be_v bind_v to_o join_v with_o other_o christian_n in_o the_o act_n of_o god_n public_a worship_n but_o withal_o he_o add_v immediate_o that_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o choose_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o pure_a church_n which_o do_v suppose_v a_o competition_n between_o two_o church_n where_o a_o person_n may_v embrace_v the_o communion_n of_o either_o as_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n so_o that_o where_o there_o be_v distinct_a communion_n the_o best_a be_v to_o be_v choose_v 2._o suppose_v no_o church_n to_o be_v so_o pure_a that_o a_o man_n conscience_n can_v be_v full_o satisfy_v in_o all_o the_o practice_n of_o it_o yet_o he_o may_v lawful_o hold_v communion_n with_o that_o church_n he_o be_v baptize_v in_o till_o the_o unlawful_a practice_n become_v the_o condition_n of_o his_o communion_n as_o here_o in_o england_n the_o condition_n of_o communion_n be_v different_a as_o to_o clergyman_n and_o layman_n if_o the_o latter_a be_v satisfy_v in_o what_o concern_v they_o they_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o reject_v communion_n themselves_o for_o what_o concern_v other_o 3._o where_o any_o church_n do_v require_v idolatrous_a act_n as_o condition_n of_o communion_n that_o church_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o a_o separation_n make_v for_o a_o distinct_a communion_n so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n of_o assign_v a_o distinct_a church_n in_o all_o age_n free_a from_o heresy_n and_o idolatry_n since_o man_n may_v communicate_v with_o a_o corrupt_a church_n so_o they_o do_v not_o communicate_v in_o their_o corruption_n and_o when_o they_o come_v to_o that_o height_n to_o require_v this_o they_o make_v themselves_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o separation_n which_o be_v make_v on_o the_o account_n of_o heresy_n or_o idolatry_n r._n p._n still_o that_o promise_n stick_v with_o i_o that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o the_o church_n and_o be_v not_o heresy_n and_o idolatry_n the_o two_o post_n of_o those_o gate_n p._n d._n if_o you_o turn_v over_o that_o promise_n never_o so_o much_o you_o will_v prove_v no_o more_o from_o it_o than_o the_o continuance_n of_o a_o christian_a church_n in_o the_o world_n with_o a_o capacity_n of_o salvation_n to_o the_o member_n of_o it_o and_o this_o we_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o it_o do_v not_o prove_v that_o any_o particular_a church_n shall_v be_v preserve_v in_o all_o age_n free_a from_o heresy_n and_o idolatry_n for_o whatever_o may_v be_v consistent_a with_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o member_n of_o a_o church_n may_v be_v consistent_a with_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n not_o prevail_v against_o it_o but_o heresy_n and_o idolatry_n may_v be_v consistent_a with_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o member_n of_o a_o church_n because_o there_o be_v so_o many_o case_n assign_v by_o divine_n wherein_o sin_n of_o ignorance_n and_o error_n be_v consistent_a with_o salvation_n i_o say_v then_o that_o christ_n promise_n do_v prove_v a_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n in_o all_o age_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n but_o they_o do_v not_o prove_v the_o indefectibility_n of_o any_o distinct_a church_n r._n p._n but_o why_o do_v dr._n st._n say_v the_o gate_n of_o hell_n have_v prevail_v against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 70._o when_o himself_o acknowledge_v it_o to_o be_v a_o true_a church_n as_o hold_v all_o the_o essential_a point_n of_o faith_n p._n d._n as_o though_o a_o man_n can_v be_v damn_v for_o nothing_o but_o for_o deny_v the_o article_n of_o his_o creed_n it_o be_v in_o respect_n of_o pride_n cruelty_n and_o all_o sort_n of_o wickedness_n as_o well_o as_o idolatry_n that_o he_o say_v the_o gate_n of_o hell_n have_v prevail_v against_o it_o r._n p._n well!_o but_o t._n g._n for_o all_o that_o prove_v that_o all_o christian_n be_v bind_v by_o virtue_n of_o their_o christianity_n to_o join_v in_o communion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 73._o p._n d._n do_v he_o so_o it_o be_v a_o great_a undertake_n and_o become_v t._n g._n but_o how_o r._n p._n first_o there_o be_v in_o the_o world_n before_o luther_n a_o distinct_a church_n who_o communion_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o this_o be_v not_o the_o protestant_n for_o that_o come_v in_o after_o luther_n therefore_o it_o be_v the_o roman_a p._n d._n this_o be_v very_o subtle_a reason_n yet_o it_o be_v possible_a we_o may_v find_v out_o something_o like_o it_o
there_o be_v in_o the_o world_n before_o julius_n caesar_n some_o civil_a society_n in_o which_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o a_o man_n to_o live_v for_o his_o own_o preservation_n but_o this_o be_v not_o the_o roman_a empire_n for_o that_o rise_v up_o after_o he_o therefore_o it_o be_v the_o roman_a commonwealth_n but_o do_v not_o this_o imply_v that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o civil_a society_n in_o the_o world_n wherein_o a_o man_n can_v preserve_v himself_o but_o the_o roman_a commonwealth_n but_o i_o will_v put_v the_o case_n a_o little_o far_a home_n after_o britain_n be_v make_v a_o province_n it_o become_v a_o member_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n and_o depend_v so_o much_o upon_o the_o strength_n and_o arm_n of_o rome_n that_o it_o be_v not_o able_a to_o defend_v itself_o it_o be_v sore_o distress_v by_o enemy_n and_o in_o danger_n of_o ruin_n send_v to_o rome_n for_o help_v there_o it_o be_v deny_v and_o the_o britain_n force_a to_o look_v out_o for_o help_v elsewhere_o now_o after_o t._n g.'s_n way_n of_o reason_v the_o britain_n must_v return_v to_o the_o roman_n because_o once_o they_o have_v be_v member_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n the_o case_n be_v alike_o in_o the_o church_n the_o time_n be_v when_o the_o western_a church_n be_v unite_v under_o one_o head_n but_o by_o degree_n this_o head_n grow_v too_o heavy_a and_o lay_v too_o great_a a_o load_n on_o the_o member_n require_v very_o hard_a and_o unreasonable_a condition_n from_o they_o upon_o this_o some_o of_o the_o member_n seek_v for_o relief_n this_o be_v deny_v they_o they_o take_v care_n of_o their_o own_o safety_n and_o do_v what_o be_v necessary_a to_o preserve_v themselves_o the_o head_n and_o some_o corrupt_a member_n conspire_v denounce_v excommunication_n if_o they_o do_v not_o present_o yield_v and_o submit_v these_o part_n stand_v upon_o their_o own_o right_n and_o ancient_a privilege_n that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o union_n of_o submission_n but_o association_n original_o between_o several_a national_a church_n and_o therefore_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n assume_v so_o much_o more_o to_o itself_o than_o do_v belong_v to_o it_o and_o deal_v so_o tyrannical_o upon_o just_a complaint_n our_o church_n have_v reason_n to_o assert_v she_o own_o freedom_n and_o to_o reform_v the_o abuse_n which_o have_v creep_v either_o into_o her_o doctrine_n or_o practice_n and_o that_o this_o be_v lawful_a proceed_n it_o offer_v to_o justify_v by_o scripture_n and_o reason_n and_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n now_o the_o question_n of_o communion_n as_o it_o be_v state_v between_o t._n g._n and_o dr._n st._n come_v to_o this_o whether_o any_o person_n be_v baptize_v in_o this_o church_n aught_o in_o order_n to_o his_o salvation_n to_o forsake_v the_o communion_n of_o it_o for_o that_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o this_o be_v the_o true_a state_n of_o it_o i_o pray_v where_o lie_v the_o force_n of_o the_o argument_n dr._n st._n yield_v communion_n with_o some_o church_n to_o be_v necessary_a and_o what_o follow_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v so_o to_o one_o baptize_v in_o it_o why_o must_v any_o such_o leave_v it_o for_o that_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n yes_o say_v t._n g._n there_o be_v a_o distinct_a church_n before_o luther_n who_o communion_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o what_o then_o what_o have_v we_o to_o do_v with_o luther_n we_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o present_a church_n of_o england_n which_o be_v reform_v by_o itself_o and_o not_o by_o luther_n why_o be_v it_o necessary_a to_o leave_v this_o church_n in_o which_o person_n be_v baptize_v and_o not_o in_o that_o before_o luther_n here_o lie_v the_o main_a hinge_n of_o the_o controversy_n to_o which_o t._n g._n aught_o to_o speak_v and_o not_o to_o run_v to_o a_o church_n before_o luther_n the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v the_o church_n of_o england_n before_o the_o reformation_n as_o well_o as_o since_o but_o it_o have_v now_o reform_v itself_o be_v a_o entire_a body_n within_o itself_o have_v bishop_n to_o govern_v it_o priest_n and_o deacon_n to_o administer_v sacrament_n to_o preach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o officiate_v in_o the_o public_a liturgy_n in_o which_o all_o the_o ancient_a creed_n be_v read_v and_o own_v the_o question_n now_o be_v whether_o salvation_n can_v be_v have_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o this_o church_n or_o all_o person_n be_v bind_v to_o return_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n this_o be_v the_o point_n if_o t._n g._n have_v any_o more_o to_o say_v to_o it_o r._n p._n t._n g._n urge_v far_o nothing_o can_v render_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n not_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n 74._o but_o either_o heresy_n or_o schism_n not_o heresy_n because_o she_o hold_v all_o the_o essential_a article_n of_o christian_a faith_n not_o schism_n because_o then_o dr._n st._n must_v assign_v some_o other_o distinct_a church_n then_o at_o least_o in_o be_v from_o who_o unity_n she_o depart_v p._n d._n a_o right_a douai_n argument_n one_o will_v take_v t._n g._n for_o a_o young_a missioner_n by_o it_o it_o be_v so_o exact_o cut_v in_o their_o form_n but_o it_o proceed_v upon_o such_o false_a supposition_n as_o these_o 1._o that_o communion_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o such_o i._n e._n as_o a_o body_n unite_v under_o such_o a_o head_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n which_o we_o utter_o deny_v and_o it_o can_v never_o be_v prove_v but_o by_o show_v that_o christ_n appoint_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v a_o argument_n i_o do_v not_o find_v that_o now_o adays_o you_o be_v willing_a to_o enter_v upon_o be_v so_o threadbare_a and_o baffle_v a_o topick_n 2._o that_o no_o doctrine_n but_o such_o as_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n can_v be_v any_o reason_n to_o hold_v off_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o a_o church_n but_o we_o think_v the_o require_v doubtful_a thing_n for_o certain_a false_a for_o true_a new_a for_o old_a absurd_a for_o reasonable_a be_v ground_n enough_o for_o we_o not_o to_o embrace_v the_o communion_n of_o a_o church_n unless_o it_o may_v be_v have_v on_o better_a term_n than_o these_o 3._o that_o no_o church_n can_v be_v guilty_a of_o schism_n unless_o we_o can_v name_v some_o distinct_a church_n from_o who_o unity_n it_o separate_v whereas_o we_o have_v often_o prove_v that_o impose_v unreasonable_a condition_n of_o communion_n make_v the_o church_n so_o impose_v guilty_a of_o the_o schism_n sure_o t._n g.'s_n stock_n be_v almost_o spend_v when_o he_o play_v the_o same_o game_n so_o often_o over_o these_o be_v not_o such_o terrible_a argument_n to_o be_v produce_v afresh_o as_o if_o they_o have_v never_o be_v hear_v of_o when_o there_o be_v not_o a_o missioner_n that_o come_v but_o have_v they_o at_o his_o finger_n end_n r._n p._n but_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v once_o the_o true_a church_n 78._o rom._n 1._o and_o the_o christian_a world_n of_o all_o age_n believe_v it_o to_o be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n of_o christ_n but_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v not_o to_o be_v the_o true_a one_o by_o a_o evidence_n equal_a to_o that_o which_o once_o prove_v it_o true_a therefore_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o be_v of_o the_o communion_n of_o that_o church_n p._n d._n o_o the_o virtue_n of_o sodden_a colewort_n how_o often_o be_v they_o produce_v without_o shame_n to_o be_v short_a sir_n 1._o we_o deny_v that_o the_o church_n of_o which_o the_o pope_n be_v head_n be_v ever_o commend_v by_o st._n paul_n or_o in_o any_o one_o age_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v own_v by_o it_o to_o be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n which_o be_v very_o much_o short_a of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n of_o all_o age_n 2._o since_o the_o evidence_n be_v so_o notorious_o faulty_a about_o prove_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n a_o small_a degree_n of_o evidence_n as_o to_o its_o corruption_n may_v exceed_v it_o and_o consequent_o be_v sufficient_a to_o keep_v we_o from_o return_v to_o its_o communion_n but_o what_o do_v t._n g._n mean_v by_o repeat_v such_o stuff_n as_o this_o which_o i_o dare_v say_v dr._n st._n only_o pass_v by_o on_o account_n of_o the_o slightness_n and_o commonness_n of_o it_o they_o be_v argument_n every_o day_n bring_v and_o every_o day_n answer_v and_o if_o he_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o see_v dr._n st.'s_n mind_n about_o they_o he_o may_v have_v see_v it_o at_o large_a in_o his_o defence_n of_o archhishop_n laud_n and_o do_v you_o think_v it_o fair_a for_o he_o every_o book_n he_o write_v to_o produce_v afresh_o every_o argument_n there_o which_o have_v receive_v no_o answer_n r._n p._n i_o perceive_v you_o begin_v to_o be_v out_o
of_o patience_n p._n d._n not_o i_o assure_v you_o when_o i_o meet_v with_o any_o thing_n that_o deserve_v it_o r._n p._n here_o come_v our_o fanatic_a friend_n to_o refresh_v you_o a_o little_a what_o be_v the_o matter_n man_n why_o so_o sad_a have_v you_o meet_v with_o a_o ill_a bargain_n at_o the_o auction_n f._n c._n no_o no._n i_o get_v a_o book_n last_o night_n have_v take_v i_o up_o till_o this_o time_n and_o true_o i_o have_v read_v something_o in_o it_o which_o fit_v much_o upon_o my_o spirit_n r._n p._n what_o be_v it_o if_o we_o may_v ask_v you_o f._n c._n it_o be_v no_o comfort_n either_o to_o you_o or_o i_o r._n p._n if_o i_o be_v concern_v i_o pray_v let_v i_o know_v f._n c._n you_o know_v last_o night_n we_o hear_v they_o at_o rutherford_n and_o gillespee_n i_o come_v in_o time_n enough_o for_o gillespee_n miscellany_n question_n a_o rare_a book_n i_o promise_v you_o and_o by_o a_o particular_a favour_n i_o carry_v it_o home_o with_o i_o and_o look_v upon_o the_o content_n i_o find_v the_o seasonable_a case_n viz._n about_o association_n and_o confederacy_n with_o idolater_n infidel_n or_o heretic_n and_o he_o prove_v they_o to_o be_v so_o absolute_o unlawful_a from_o scripture_n and_o many_o sound_a orthodox_n divine_n that_o for_o my_o part_n he_o have_v full_o convince_v and_o settle_v i_o and_o i_o think_v it_o my_o duty_n to_o come_v and_o to_o tell_v you_o so_o r._n p._n well_o we_o will_v let_v alone_o that_o discourse_n at_o present_a we_o be_v at_o our_o old_a trade_n again_o and_o i_o be_v just_a come_n to_o a_o seasonable_a question_n for_o you_o viz._n whether_o you_o have_v not_o as_o much_o reason_n to_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n f._n c._n who_o doubt_v of_o that_o p._n d._n i_o do_v sir_n nay_o more_o i_o absolute_o deny_v it_o f._n c._n what_o matter_n be_v it_o what_o you_o say_v or_o deny_v you_o will_v do_v either_o for_o a_o good_a preferment_n have_v not_o you_o assent_v and_o consent_v to_o all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o book_n of_o common_a prayer_n and_o what_o will_v you_o stick_v at_o after_o p._n d._n consider_v sir_n what_o it_o be_v to_o judge_v rash_a judgement_n i_o wonder_v man_n that_o pretend_v to_o conscience_n and_o seem_v so_o nice_a and_o scrupulous_a in_o some_o thing_n can_v allow_v thmselves_fw-mi in_o the_o practice_n of_o so_o dangerous_a a_o sin_n if_o you_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o debate_v this_o point_n before_o we_o without_o clamour_n and_o impertinency_n i_o be_o for_o you_o f._n c._n you_o will_v fain_o draw_v i_o in_o to_o dispute_v again_o will_v you_o no_o such_o matter_n there_o be_v your_o man_n he_o will_v manage_v our_o cause_n for_o we_o against_o you_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n i_o warrant_v you_o r._n p._n i_o be_o provide_v for_o it_o for_o t._n g._n desire_n of_o dr._n st._n for_o the_o sake_n of_o the_o presbyterian_o anabaptist_n 78._o and_o other_o separate_a congregation_n to_o know_v why_o the_o believe_a all_o the_o ancient_a creed_n and_o lead_v a_o good_a life_n may_v not_o be_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n unless_o one_o be_v of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n p._n d._n a_o very_a doughty_a question_n as_o though_o we_o be_v like_o you_o and_o immediate_o damn_v all_o person_n who_o be_v not_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o our_o church_n we_o say_v their_o separation_n from_o we_o be_v very_o unjust_a and_o unreasonable_a and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o colour_n for_o make_v their_o case_n equal_a with_o we_o as_o to_o the_o separation_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n r._n p._n i_o will_v tell_v you_o of_o a_o man_n who_o make_v the_o case_n parallel_n it_o be_v one_o dr._n st._n in_o his_o irenicum_fw-la and_o t._n g._n produce_v many_o page_n out_o of_o he_o to_o that_o purpose_n 79._o p._n d._n to_o save_v you_o the_o trouble_n of_o repeat_v they_o i_o have_v read_v they_o over_o and_o do_v think_v these_o answer_n may_v serve_v for_o his_o vindication_n 1._o that_o in_o that_o very_a place_n he_o make_v separation_n from_o a_o church_n retain_v purity_n of_o doctrine_n on_o the_o account_n of_o some_o corrupt_a practice_n to_o be_v unlawful_a and_o afterward_o in_o case_n man_n be_v unsatisfied_a as_o to_o some_o condition_n of_o communion_n 123._o he_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v lawful_a to_o erect_v new_a church_n because_o a_o mere_a require_v conformity_n in_o some_o suspect_a rite_n do_v not_o make_v a_o church_n otherwise_o sound_a to_o be_v no_o true_a church_n or_o such_o a_o church_n from_o which_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o make_v a_o total_a separation_n which_o be_v then_o do_v when_o man_n enter_v into_o a_o new_a and_o distinct_a society_n for_o worship_n under_o distinct_a and_o peculiar_a officer_n govern_v by_o law_n and_o church_n rule_v different_a from_o those_o of_o the_o church_n they_o separate_v from_o and_o now_o let_v your_o fanatic_a friend_n judge_n whether_o this_o man_n even_o in_o the_o day_n of_o write_v his_o irenicum_fw-la do_v justify_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o separate_a congregation_n which_o he_o speak_v express_o against_o f._n c._n no_o true_o we_o be_v all_o now_o for_o separate_a congregation_n and_o know_v better_a what_o we_o have_v to_o do_v than_o our_o forefather_n do_v alas_o what_o comfort_n be_v there_o in_o bare_a nonconformity_n for_o our_o people_n will_v not_o endure_v we_o if_o we_o do_v not_o proceed_v to_o separation_n he_o that_o speak_v against_o separation_n ruin_v we_o and_o our_o cause_n p._n d._n so_o far_o then_o we_o have_v clear_v dr._n st._n from_o patronise_a the_o cause_n of_o the_o separate_a congregation_n 2._o he_o say_v that_o as_o to_o thing_n leave_v undetermined_a by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o primitive_a and_o reform_a church_n 124._o and_o in_o matter_n of_o order_n decency_n and_o government_n every_o one_o notwithstanding_o what_o his_o private_a judgement_n may_v be_v of_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o submit_v to_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o lawful_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n can_v any_o thing_n be_v say_v plain_a for_o conformity_n than_o this_o be_v by_o the_o author_n of_o the_o irenicum_fw-la r._n p._n but_o how_o then_o come_v in_o those_o word_n produce_v by_o t._n g._n p._n d._n i_o will_v tell_v you_o he_o suppose_v that_o some_o scrupulous_a and_o conscientious_a man_n after_o all_o endeavour_n use_v to_o satisfy_v themselves_o may_v remain_v unsatisfied_a as_o to_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o some_o impose_v rite_n but_o dare_v not_o proceed_v to_o positive_a separation_n from_o the_o church_n but_o be_v willing_a to_o comply_v in_o all_o other_o thing_n save_v in_o those_o rite_n which_o they_o still_o scruple_n and_o concern_v these_o he_o put_v the_o question_n whether_o such_o bare-nonconformity_a do_v involve_v such_o man_n in_o the_o guilt_n of_o schism_n and_o this_o i_o confess_v he_o resolve_v negative_o and_o so_o bring_v in_o that_o long_a passage_n t._n g._n produce_v out_o of_o he_o i_o now_o appeal_v to_o yourself_o whether_o t._n g._n have_v deal_v fair_o with_o dr._n st._n in_o two_o thing_n 1._o in_o not_o distinguish_v the_o case_n of_o separation_n from_o that_o of_o bare_a nonconformity_n only_o in_o some_o suspect_a rite_n and_o in_o produce_v these_o word_n to_o justify_v the_o separate_a congregation_n 2._o in_o take_v his_o judgement_n in_o this_o matter_n rather_o from_o his_o irenicum_fw-la write_v so_o long_o since_o than_o from_o his_o late_a write_n wherein_o he_o have_v purposely_o consider_v the_o difference_n of_o the_o case_n of_o those_o who_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o of_o our_o separation_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n r._n p._n but_o have_v he_o do_v this_o indeed_o and_o do_v t._n g._n know_v it_o p._n d._n yes_o very_o well_o 1●6_n for_o it_o be_v in_o that_o very_a book_n the_o preface_n whereof_o t._n g._n pretend_v to_o answer_v in_o these_o dialogue_n and_o he_o do_v not_o speak_v of_o it_o by_o the_o by_o but_o discourse_v large_o about_o it_o be_v this_o fair_a deal_n but_o the_o irenicum_fw-la serve_v better_a for_o his_o purpose_n as_o he_o think_v and_o yet_o he_o have_v foul_o misrepresent_v that_o too_o r._n p._n but_o yet_o dr._n st._n must_v not_o think_v to_o escape_v so_o for_o he_o have_v search_v another_o book_n of_o he_o call_v his_o rational_a account_n and_o there_o he_o find_v a_o passage_n he_o think_v in_o favour_n to_o dissenter_n from_o the_o church_n of_o england_n 87._o and_o which_o undermine_v the_o church_n of_o england_n p._n d._n therefore_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o guilty_a of_o idolatry_n r._n p._n have_v a_o little_a patience_n
as_o the_o traveller_n do_v to_o polus_n in_o erasmus_n or_o that_o it_o be_v clear_a or_o manifest_v of_o itself_o and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o so_o he_o say_v appear_v by_o the_o pain_n and_o way_n he_o take_v to_o find_v it_o out_o p._n d._n this_o be_v yet_o a_o degree_n low_o by_o clear_o and_o express_o dr._n st._n mean_n that_o which_o be_v so_o to_o a_o unprejudiced_a mind_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o so_o plain_a but_o man_n may_v cavil_v at_o it_o not_o the_o be_v of_o god_n not_o the_o certainty_n of_o our_o sense_n not_o the_o difference_n of_o good_a and_o evil_a not_o the_o come_n of_o the_o messiah_n not_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o will_v t._n g._n say_v that_o none_o of_o these_o be_v clear_a because_o man_n be_v put_v to_o pain_n and_o several_a way_n to_o prove_v they_o if_o therefore_o dr._n st._n have_v show_v that_o all_o the_o evasion_n of_o the_o force_n of_o the_o second_o commandment_n be_v mere_a cavil_n and_o will_v take_v off_o as_o well_o the_o force_n of_o any_o other_o commandment_n if_o man_n think_v themselves_o as_o much_o concern_v to_o do_v it_o i_o think_v he_o have_v prove_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o commandment_n to_o be_v clear_a and_o express_v against_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n by_o a_o image_n and_o for_o his_o friend_n polus_n you_o know_v it_o do_v not_o look_v well_o in_o conversation_n for_o a_o man_n to_o repeat_v his_o own_o jest_n but_o you_o name_v a_o three_o passage_n t._n g._n repeat_v out_o of_o his_o former_a book_n what_o be_v that_o i_o pray_v r._n p._n that_o concern_v dr._n st.'s_n first_o way_n of_o find_v out_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o law_n for_o he_o say_v 125._o the_o law_n do_v only_o express_o forbid_v bow_v down_o to_o the_o image_n themselves_o as_o the_o heathen_n do_v but_o speak_v not_o one_o word_n of_o the_o lawfulness_n or_o unlawfulness_n of_o worship_v god_n himself_o by_o they_o and_o upon_o this_o he_o upbraid_v dr._n st._n that_o spend_v above_o a_o hundred_o page_n about_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o second_o commandment_n he_o neither_o endeavour_n to_o remove_v the_o contradiction_n nor_o to_o answer_v the_o argument_n of_o t._n g._n p._n d._n then_o true_o he_o deserve_v pity_n and_o to_o have_v his_o friend_n come_v in_o to_o help_v he_o they_o be_v such_o wonderful_a contradiction_n and_o mighty_a argument_n but_o dr._n st._n have_v at_o large_a prove_v 1._o that_o the_o heathen_n do_v not_o take_v the_o image_n themselves_o for_o god_n etc._n in_o a_o large_a discourse_n to_o that_o purpose_n and_o consequent_o this_o command_n be_v not_o express_v against_o the_o heathen_a idolatry_n in_o t._n g.'s_n sense_n of_o it_o 2._o that_o the_o father_n do_v understand_v this_o commandment_n to_o be_v express_o against_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n by_o a_o image_n 431._o in_o another_o large_a discourse_n which_o he_o conclude_v with_o those_o word_n of_o s._n ambrose_n non_fw-la vult_fw-la se_fw-la deus_fw-la in_o lapidibus_fw-la coli_fw-la god_n will_v not_o be_v worship_v in_o stone_n and_o be_v this_o nothing_o to_o the_o answer_v t._n g.'s_n argument_n 3._o that_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n before_o the_o ark_n and_o the_o cherubim_n the_o only_a argument_n of_o t._n g._n do_v not_o reach_v to_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n by_o image_n 717._o and_o this_o in_o another_o set_a discourse_n 4._o that_o god_n do_v afterward_o explain_v his_o own_o law_n by_o condemn_v the_o worship_n of_o himself_o by_o image_n in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o golden_a calf_n and_o the_o calf_n of_o dan_n and_o bethel_n and_o he_o punctual_o answer_n t._n g.'s_n objection_n 783._o and_o after_o all_o this_o be_v it_o not_o great_a tenderness_n and_o modesty_n in_o t._n g._n to_o say_v that_o dr._n st._n only_o criticize_v upon_o t._n g._n his_o exception_n and_o do_v neither_o remove_n the_o contradiction_n nor_o answer_v the_o argument_n of_o t._n g._n i_o never_o yet_o see_v plain_a evidence_n of_o a_o forlorn_a cause_n than_o these_o thing_n give_v by_o this_o taste_n i_o begin_v to_o fear_v when_o we_o come_v to_o the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n we_o shall_v find_v very_o little_a new_a or_o material_a however_o be_v thus_o far_o engage_v i_o be_o resolve_v god_n willing_a to_o attend_v you_o quite_o through_o his_o late_a dialogue_n and_o if_o you_o please_v at_o our_o next_o meeting_n we_o will_v enter_v upon_o the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n and_o i_o will_v undertake_v to_o make_v good_a the_o charge_n and_o i_o shall_v expect_v from_o you_o t._n g.'s_n answer_v r._n p._n i_o will_v not_o fail_v and_o i_o pray_v brother_n fanatic_a let_v we_o have_v your_o company_n for_o i_o have_v a_o terrible_a charge_n against_o the_o church_n of_o england_n for_o bow_v to_o the_o altar_n f._n c._n i_o shall_v be_v glad_a to_o hear_v that_o with_o all_o my_o heart_n the_o three_o conference_n about_o the_o nature_n of_o idolatry_n p._n d._n we_o be_v now_o enter_v upon_o a_o weighty_a business_n and_o therefore_o without_o any_o preface_n to_o it_o i_o begin_v dr._n st._n in_o his_o late_a defence_n have_v undertake_v to_o clear_v the_o nature_n of_o idolatry_n by_o consider_v two_o thing_n 1._o whether_o it_o be_v consistent_a with_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o one_o supreme_a god_n 2._o wherein_o the_o nature_n of_o that_o divine_a worship_n lie_v which_o be_v give_v to_o a_o creature_n make_v it_o idolatry_n 1._o to_o clear_v the_o former_a he_o consider_v who_o those_o be_v which_o by_o common_a consent_n be_v charge_v with_o idolatry_n and_o from_o thence_o he_o suppose_v the_o best_a resolution_n of_o the_o question_n may_v be_v gather_v and_o those_o be_v 1._o the_o ancient_a heathen_n 2._o modern_a heathen_n 3._o the_o arrian_n and_o concern_v these_o he_o prove_v that_o they_o do_v all_o acknowledge_v one_o supreme_a god_n and_o consequent_o the_o notion_n of_o idolatry_n can_v not_o consist_v in_o the_o worship_n of_o many_o independent_a deity_n 1._o as_o to_o the_o ancient_a heathen_n 1._o from_o the_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n 2._o from_o their_o own_o writer_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n of_o who_o he_o name_v twelve_o considerable_a one_o 3._o from_o the_o father_n and_o there_o he_o show_v from_o a_o multitude_n of_o plain_a testimony_n that_o the_o state_n of_o the_o controversy_n about_o idolatry_n between_o the_o father_n and_o heathen_n be_v not_o about_o a_o supreme_a god_n which_o be_v acknowledge_v on_o both_o side_n but_o whether_o divine_a worship_n be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o any_o creature_n on_o the_o account_n of_o any_o suppose_a excellency_n in_o themselves_o or_o relation_n to_o god_n and_o so_o he_o draw_v the_o history_n of_o this_o controversy_n through_o the_o several_a age_n of_o justin_n martyr_n athenagoras_n clemens_n of_o alexandria_n origen_n cyril_n s._n augustin_n etc._n etc._n in_o short_a through_o all_o those_o who_o do_v with_o great_a reputation_n to_o christianity_n manage_v this_o cause_n against_o the_o heathen_a idolater_n 2._o as_o to_o modern_a heathen_n two_o way_n 1._o from_o the_o testimony_n of_o your_o own_o writer_n concern_v the_o brahmin_n chineses_n tartar_n american_n african_n goth_n and_o laplander_n 2._o from_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o congregation_n of_o cardinal_n in_o a_o remarkable_a case_n about_o idolatry_n in_o china_n wherein_o their_o resolution_n be_v desire_v 3._o as_o to_o the_o arrian_n he_o prove_v from_o athanasius_n gr._n nazianzen_n nyssen_n basil_n epiphanius_n cyril_n theodoret_n s._n chrysostom_n s._n ambrose_n s._n augustin_n that_o the_o arrian_n be_v unanimous_o charge_v with_o idolatry_n although_o they_o do_v acknowledge_v but_o one_o god_n and_o suppose_v the_o great_a create_a excellency_n to_o be_v in_o christ_n and_o believe_v the_o worship_n of_o christ_n tend_v to_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o father_n 2._o as_o to_o the_o nature_n of_o divine_a worship_n he_o proceed_v in_o this_o method_n 1._o to_o show_v what_o worship_n be_v which_o he_o distinguish_v from_o honour_n the_o one_o relate_v to_o bare_a excellency_n the_o other_o to_o superiority_n and_o power_n which_o distinction_n he_o prove_v from_o the_o most_o eminent_a school_n divine_n 2._o what_o divine_a worship_n be_v viz._n such_o a_o subjection_n of_o ourselves_o to_o god_n as_o show_v his_o peculiar_a sovereignty_n over_o we_o from_o whence_o he_o proceed_v to_o manifest_v that_o there_o be_v some_o peculiar_a external_a act_n of_o divine_a worship_n which_o he_o prove_v 1._o from_o the_o nature_n and_o design_n of_o religious_a worship_n and_o here_o he_o inquire_v into_o the_o distinction_n of_o civil_a and_o religious_a worship_n which_o he_o say_v as_o other_o moral_a action_n be_v to_o be_v take_v from_o the_o circumstance_n of_o they_o and_o from_o hence_o come_v the_o institution_n of_o solemn_a rite_n for_o religious_a worship_n and_o the_o best_a
indifferent_a rite_n there_o have_v be_v some_o reason_n for_o what_o t._n g._n sai_z but_o the_o force_n of_o what_o dr._n st._n say_v lie_v not_o mere_o in_o their_o have_a no_o image_n in_o church_n in_o the_o primitive_a time_n but_o in_o the_o reason_n give_v by_o the_o primitive_a christian_n against_o the_o worship_n of_o they_o from_o whence_o he_o have_v at_o large_a prove_v that_o the_o primitive_a christian_n do_v look_v on_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n as_o utter_o unlawful_a by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n although_o the_o object_n represent_v do_v deserve_v worship_n and_o this_o i_o take_v to_o be_v one_o of_o the_o most_o material_a discourse_n in_o dr._n st.'s_n book_n to_o the_o present_a controversy_n and_o which_o he_o lay_v the_o great_a weight_n upon_o for_o he_o insist_o upon_o these_o several_a particular_n 1._o 428._o that_o they_o judge_v such_o a_o representation_n of_o god_n by_o image_n to_o be_v unsuitable_a to_o his_o nature_n for_o which_o he_o produce_v the_o testimony_n of_o clemens_n alexandr_n justin_n martyr_n athenagoras_n origen_n s._n hierom_n s._n augustin_n and_o other_o 2._o etc._n that_o they_o look_v on_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n as_o repugnant_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n as_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o second_o commandment_n which_o do_v oblige_v christian_n 3._o etc._n that_o to_o suppose_v that_o they_o look_v on_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n as_o a_o thing_n indifferent_a be_v to_o charge_v the_o primitive_a christian_n with_o great_a hypocrisy_n 4._o 505._o that_o the_o christian_a church_n continue_v to_o have_v the_o same_o opinion_n about_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n after_o the_o pagan_a idolatry_n be_v suppress_v 5._o 521._o that_o it_o be_v no_o just_a excuse_n in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n that_o they_o worship_v a_o true_a object_n or_o give_v only_o a_o inferior_a worship_n to_o the_o image_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o those_o represent_v by_o they_o 6._o etc._n that_o ignorance_n and_o superstition_n first_o bring_v in_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n which_o be_v still_o condemn_v by_o the_o best_a divine_n of_o the_o church_n 7._o 555._o that_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n come_v to_o be_v establish_v in_o the_o church_n by_o very_o indirect_a mean_n such_o as_o treason_n calumny_n lie_n and_o burn_v and_o suppress_v all_o book_n against_o it_o 8._o 840._o that_o when_o it_o be_v establish_v by_o the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a it_o be_v vehement_o oppose_v by_o the_o western_a church_n at_o the_o council_n of_o francford_n and_o that_o this_o council_n of_o nice_a be_v never_o own_v in_o the_o western_a church_n for_o a_o general_n council_n till_o the_o reformation_n begin_v and_o now_o i_o pray_v be_v it_o possible_a for_o t._n g._n to_o overlook_v all_o these_o thing_n or_o be_v it_o fair_a to_o pretend_v to_o answer_v dr._n st.'s_n book_n wherein_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v and_o yet_o to_o pass_v they_o over_o as_o if_o they_o have_v never_o be_v write_v if_o this_o be_v the_o way_n of_o make_v just_o discharge_v i_o be_o afraid_a t._n g.'s_n credit_n can_v hold_v out_o long_o for_o this_o be_v not_o after_o the_o rate_n of_o five_o shilling_n in_o the_o pound_n and_o for_o all_o that_o i_o see_v dr._n st._n may_v take_v out_o the_o statute_n against_o he_o however_o i_o shall_v consider_v what_o he_o pretend_v to_o discharge_n and_o if_o his_o payment_n be_v not_o good_a in_o that_o neither_o his_o word_n will_v hardly_o be_v take_v for_o any_o just_a discharge_v more_o i_o pray_v go_v on_o r._n p._n for_o the_o five_o chapter_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o second_o commandment_n t._n g._n say_v 177._o if_o god_n have_v there_o express_o prohibit_v the_o give_v any_o worship_n to_o himself_o by_o a_o image_n as_o dr._n st._n affirm_v there_o need_v no_o more_o than_o to_o expose_v the_o law_n as_o in_o a_o table_n in_o legislative_a gothick_n as_o it_o be_v do_v by_o he_o p._n 671._o with_o the_o addition_n only_o of_o a_o finger_n in_o the_o margin_n to_o point_v to_o the_o word_n for_o every_o one_o that_o run_v to_o read_v they_o p._n d._n and_o must_v this_o pass_v for_o a_o answer_n to_o dr._n st.'s_n discourse_n about_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o second_o commandment_n i_o be_o real_o ashamed_a of_o such_o trifle_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o so_o great_a importance_n i_o know_v not_o whether_o it_o be_v the_o legislative_a gothick_n or_o no_o or_o a_o finger_n on_o the_o wall_n but_o something_o or_o other_o about_o that_o commandment_n have_v so_o affright_v you_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o you_o dare_v not_o let_v it_o be_v see_v in_o your_o ordinary_a book_n of_o devotion_n as_o for_o the_o cavil_v about_o express_o i_o have_v answer_v it_o already_o r._n p._n for_o his_o last_o chapter_n t._n g._n say_v there_o need_v no_o more_o than_o to_o say_v 179._o that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v not_o allow_v any_o worship_n to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o altar_n p._n d._n be_v it_o possible_a for_o t._n g._n to_o think_v to_o fob_v we_o off_o with_o such_o answer_n as_o these_o bare_o to_o tell_v his_o adversary_n he_o may_v have_v spare_v this_o and_o the_o other_o discourse_n r._n p._n but_o t._n g._n say_v this_o be_v the_o most_o material_a thing_n in_o that_o chapter_n p._n d._n say_v you_o so_o be_v the_o wise_a council_n of_o nice_a so_o immaterial_a a_o thing_n that_o it_o must_v now_o be_v quite_o abandon_v and_o no_o kind_n of_o discharge_n be_v so_o much_o as_o offer_v to_o be_v make_v for_o it_o be_v there_o nothing_o material_a in_o what_o concern_v the_o charge_n of_o contradiction_n paradox_n school-disputes_a &_o c._n and_o all_o the_o other_o instance_n wave_v to_o come_v to_o this_o of_o bow_v to_o the_o altar_n there_o must_v be_v some_o mystery_n in_o this_o and_o i_o think_v i_o have_v find_v it_o the_o patronus_fw-la bonae_fw-la fidei_fw-la inveigh_v bitter_o against_o this_o as_o worse_a than_o egyptian_a idolatry_n and_o reproach_n dr._n st._n upon_o account_n of_o his_o defend_n it_o and_o t._n g._n find_v it_o much_o easy_a to_o reproach_v than_o to_o answer_v r._n p._n the_o truth_n be_v this_o patronus_fw-la bonae_fw-la fidei_fw-la do_v t._n g._n knight_n service_n for_o when_o he_o have_v no_o mind_n to_o appear_v himself_o he_o serve_v he_o for_o a_o knight_n of_o the_o post_n who_o run_v blindfold_a upon_o any_o thing_n that_o may_v discredit_v the_o church_n of_o england_n two_o or_o three_o such_o rare_a man_n will_v ease_v we_o of_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o trouble_n 187._o for_o t._n g._n take_v between_o five_o and_o six_o page_n together_o out_o of_o he_o in_o this_o place_n beside_o what_o he_o have_v take_v up_o at_o interest_n upon_o other_o occasion_n p._n d._n be_v this_o the_o just_a discharge_n to_o borrow_v so_o much_o out_o of_o the_o fanatic_a stock_n set_v then_o aside_o what_o be_v bring_v over_o of_o the_o old_a account_n which_o have_v be_v reckon_v for_o before_o and_o how_o very_o many_o material_a thing_n be_v never_o enter_v which_o he_o be_v accountable_a for_o and_o how_o much_o he_o have_v borrow_v upon_o the_o bona_n fides_n of_o the_o fanatic_a historian_n all_o the_o rest_n will_v amount_v to_o a_o very_a pitiful_a discharge_n but_o since_o no_o better_a payment_n can_v be_v have_v let_v we_o at_o least_o examine_v this_o for_o this_o bona_n fides_n be_v a_o kind_n of_o republican_n public_a faith_n which_o no_o body_n will_v trust_v twice_o not_o so_o much_o as_o for_o bodkin_n and_o thimble_n f._n c._n hold_v sir_n you_o love_v always_o to_o be_v rub_v upon_o old_a sore_n have_v you_o forget_v the_o act_n of_o oblivion_n you_o know_v we_o dare_v not_o speak_v what_o we_o think_v of_o those_o time_n now_o and_o be_v that_o fair_a to_o accuse_v when_o we_o dare_v not_o answer_v mind_v your_o own_o business_n defend_v the_o church_n of_o england_n if_o you_o can_v in_o that_o idolatrous_a practice_n of_o bow_v to_o the_o altar_n i_o always_o think_v what_o it_o will_v come_v to_o when_o dr._n st._n go_v about_o the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n upon_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n i_o know_v he_o can_v never_o defend_v himself_o but_o upon_o good_a orthodox_n fanatic_a principle_n as_o you_o call_v they_o now_o sir_n you_o have_v he_o at_o a_o advantage_n join_v your_o force_n and_o t._n g.'s_n with_o that_o of_o the_o patronus_fw-la bonae_fw-la fidei_fw-la and_o if_o the_o goose_n follow_v the_o fox_n close_o you_o will_v keep_v he_o from_o ever_o stir_v more_o p._n d._n i_o thank_v you_o for_o your_o good_a will_n to_o the_o cause_n and_o that_o be_v all_o i_o fear_v from_o you_o you_o only_o add_v to_o the_o number_n and_o help_v to_o preserve_v the_o roman_a capitol_n by_o
your_o noise_n r._n p._n you_o shall_v not_o escape_v thus_o what_o say_v you_o to_o bow_v to_o the_o altar_n be_v not_o that_o as_o great_a idolatry_n as_o worship_v of_o image_n p._n d._n do_v you_o not_o remember_v the_o answer_n dr._n st._n have_v already_o give_v to_o this_o objection_n r._n p._n i_o tell_v you_o i_o read_v none_o of_o his_o book_n and_o know_v not_o what_o he_o have_v write_v but_o as_o i_o find_v it_o in_o t._n g._n p._n d._n what_o be_v that_o r._n p._n have_v i_o not_o tell_v you_o already_o that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v not_o allow_v any_o worship_n to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o altar_n p._n d._n and_o be_v not_o that_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o dare_v any_o of_o you_o say_v so_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o respect_n of_o image_n r._n p._n but_o t._n g._n say_v this_o be_v not_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o canon_n which_o dr._n st._n produce_v 180._o for_o he_o say_v the_o canon_n only_o imply_v that_o they_o give_v no_o religious_a worship_n to_o it_o but_o they_o do_v not_o deny_v any_o kind_n of_o worship_n to_o be_v give_v to_o it_o and_o dr._n st._n himself_o grant_v that_o there_o be_v a_o reverence_n due_a to_o sacred_a place_n p._n d._n now_o your_o bolt_n be_v shoot_v i_o hope_v i_o may_v have_v leave_n to_o say_v something_o both_o in_o behalf_n of_o the_o canon_n and_o dr._n st._n 1._o for_o the_o canon_n i_o say_v as_o dr._n st._n do_v that_o it_o deny_v any_o worship_n to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o altar_n for_o it_o make_v the_o adoration_n to_o be_v immediate_o make_v to_o the_o divine_a majesty_n without_o respect_n to_o the_o altar_n either_o as_o the_o object_n or_o mean_n of_o worship_n which_o i_o prove_v 1._o from_o the_o introduction_n for_o can_v any_o word_n be_v more_o express_a than_o those_o in_o the_o introduction_n for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o church_n be_v the_o house_n of_o god_n dedicate_v to_o his_o holy_a worship_n not_o to_o that_o of_o the_o altar_n and_o therefore_o ought_v to_o mind_n we_o both_o of_o the_o greatness_n and_o goodness_n of_o his_o divine_a majesty_n not_o of_o the_o sacredness_n of_o the_o altar_n certain_v it_o be_v that_o the_o acknowledgement_n thereof_o not_o only_o inward_o in_o our_o heart_n but_o also_o outward_o with_o our_o body_n must_v needs_o be_v pious_a in_o itself_o profitable_a unto_o we_o and_o edify_v unto_o other_o if_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o canon_n have_v be_v to_o have_v give_v any_o worship_n to_o the_o altar_n the_o introduction_n must_v have_v relate_v to_o that_o and_o not_o to_o the_o divine_a majesty_n 2._o from_o the_o recommendation_n we_o therefore_o think_v it_o meet_v and_o behooveful_a and_o hearty_o commend_v it_o to_o all_o good_a and_o well-affected_a people_n member_n of_o this_o church_n that_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o tender_v unto_o the_o lord_n not_o to_o the_o altar_n the_o say_v due_a acknowledgement_n by_o do_v reverence_n and_o obeisance_n both_o at_o their_o come_n in_o and_o go_v out_o of_o the_o say_a church_n etc._n etc._n according_a to_o the_o most_o ancient_a custom_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n in_o pure_a time_n and_o of_o this_o church_n also_o for_o many_o year_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n 3._o from_o the_o express_a disow_v the_o give_v any_o religious_a worship_n to_o the_o communion_n table_n which_o be_v not_o mean_v of_o a_o individuum_fw-la vagum_fw-la but_o of_o this_o act_n of_o adoration_n which_o be_v the_o religious_a worship_n here_o speak_v of_o and_o thereby_o no_o kind_n of_o worship_n be_v intend_v to_o the_o altar_n but_o only_o to_o god_n and_o which_o be_v more_o plain_a yet_o by_o what_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v not_o do_v out_o of_o a_o opinion_n of_o the_o corporal_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n on_o the_o table_n or_o in_o the_o mystical_a element_n but_o only_o mark_n that_o for_o the_o advancement_n of_o god_n majesty_n and_o to_o give_v he_o alone_o not_o the_o altar_n together_o with_o he_o that_o honour_n and_o glory_n which_o be_v due_a unto_o he_o and_o no_o otherwise_o can_v any_o word_n be_v plain_a than_o these_o they_o want_v only_o legislative_a gothick_n and_o a_o finger_n in_o the_o margin_n for_o t._n g._n to_o understand_v they_o 4._o archbishop_n laud_v who_o certain_o understand_v the_o meaning_n of_o this_o canon_n plead_v only_o for_o the_o worship_n to_o be_v give_v immediate_o to_o god_n himself_o god_n forbid_v say_v he_o 46._o that_o we_o shall_v worship_v any_o thing_n but_o god_n himself_o and_o he_o add_v if_o there_o be_v no_o table_n stand_v he_o will_v worship_v god_n when_o he_o come_v into_o his_o house_n and_o he_o call_v it_o still_o do_v reverence_n to_o almighty_a god_n but_o only_o towards_o his_o altar_n and_o he_o say_v the_o people_n do_v understand_v this_o full_o and_o apply_v the_o worship_n to_o god_n and_o to_o none_o but_o god_n 5._o when_o the_o introduce_v this_o be_v make_v one_o of_o the_o article_n of_o his_o charge_n by_o the_o commons_o his_o answer_n be_v 473._o that_o his_o bow_n be_v only_o to_o worship_n god_n not_o the_o altar_n and_o i_o hope_v it_o be_v no_o offence_n or_o treason_n to_o worship_n god_n in_o the_o king_n own_o chapel_n or_o to_o induce_v other_o to_o do_v the_o like_a 6._o i_o do_v not_o find_v any_o of_o our_o divine_n who_o plead_v most_o for_o it_o do_v contend_v for_o any_o more_o than_o worship_v god_n towards_o the_o altar_n and_o not_o give_v any_o worship_n to_o the_o altar_n the_o argument_n they_o use_v be_v for_o determine_v the_o local_a circumstance_n of_o worship_n and_o not_o for_o make_v the_o altar_n the_o object_n of_o it_o etc._n and_o the_o difference_n between_o these_o two_o dr._n st._n have_v at_o large_a clear_v r._n p._n but_o can_v we_o say_v that_o we_o only_o worship_v god_n before_o a_o image_n and_o do_v not_o give_v any_o religious_a worship_n to_o the_o image_n and_o then_o the_o case_n be_v parallel_v p._n d._n you_o may_v say_v so_o and_o you_o sometime_o do_v to_o deceive_v ignorant_a people_n but_o you_o can_v say_v it_o true_o for_o 1._o your_o council_n have_v determine_v that_o religious_a worship_n be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o image_n our_o canon_n say_v it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o altar_n therefore_o the_o case_n be_v far_o from_o be_v parallel_n and_o dr._n st._n have_v full_o prove_v that_o the_o nicene_n council_n do_v require_v religious_a worship_n to_o be_v give_v to_o image_n etc._n and_o anathematize_n all_o who_o do_v it_o not_o and_o utter_o reject_v those_o that_o say_v they_o be_v to_o be_v have_v only_o for_o memory_n and_o out_o of_o some_o kind_n of_o honour_n or_o reverence_n for_o nothing_o but_o religious_a worship_n will_v satisfy_v they_o and_o the_o act_n of_o that_o worship_n be_v express_v to_o be_v not_o only_o bow_v but_o prostration_n kiss_v oblation_n of_o incense_n and_o light_n and_o dr._n st._n have_v elsewhere_o show_v that_o all_o the_o act_n of_o worship_n which_o the_o heathen_n do_v perform_v to_o their_o image_n in_o old_a rome_n be_v give_v to_o image_n in_o modern_a rome_n 699._o 2._o those_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n who_o have_v only_o contend_v for_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n before_o the_o image_n have_v be_v condemn_v by_o other_o as_o savour_v of_o heresy_n who_o say_v it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o image_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v true_o and_o proper_o and_o that_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n be_v dangerous_a rash_a and_o sovour_v of_o heresy_n 599._o which_o be_v likewise_o prove_v at_o large_a by_o dr._n st._n r._n p._n but_o do_v not_o dr._n st._n himself_o allow_v a_o reverence_n due_a to_o sacred_a place_n p._n d._n he_o do_v so_o but_o do_v you_o observe_v the_o difference_n he_o put_v between_o that_o and_o worship_n i_o will_v endeavour_v to_o make_v his_o distinct_a notion_n of_o these_o thing_n plain_a to_o you_o first_o he_o distinguish_v between_o honour_n and_o worship_n 1._o honour_n he_o make_v to_o be_v the_o esteem_n of_o excellency_n either_o inward_a only_o in_o the_o mind_n either_o outward_a in_o act_n suitable_a to_o that_o estimation_n and_o this_o excellency_n may_v be_v twofold_a 1._o personal_n 2._o relative_n 1._o personal_a and_o that_o threefold_a 1._o civil_a in_o regard_n of_o humane_a society_n as_o that_o of_o abraham_n to_o the_o child_n of_o heth._n 2._o moral_a on_o account_n of_o moral_a excellency_n either_o natural_a or_o acquire_v 3._o spiritual_a in_o regard_n of_o supernatural_a grace_n and_o that_o may_v be_v give_v two_o way_n 1._o to_o the_o person_n as_o present_v which_o be_v religious_a respect_n as_o that_o of_o nabuchadnezzar_n to_o daniel_n dan._n 2.46_o of_o abraham_n
to_o the_o angel_n gen._n 18.2_o 2._o to_o they_o as_o absent_v and_o this_o be_v religious_a honour_n and_o it_o lie_v chief_o in_o thanksgiving_n to_o god_n for_o they_o and_o celebrate_v their_o memory_n because_o the_o honour_n of_o divine_a grace_n ought_v to_o redound_v chief_o to_o the_o giver_n of_o they_o 2._o relative_n from_o the_o relation_n which_o thing_n have_v to_o what_o we_o esteem_v on_o the_o account_n of_o its_o own_o excellency_n 1._o civil_a relation_n to_o our_o friend_n or_o stranger_n who_o we_o esteem_v and_o so_o we_o set_v a_o value_n on_o their_o picture_n on_o their_o letter_n or_o handwriting_n or_o any_o thing_n belong_v to_o they_o 2._o spiritual_a relation_n to_o god_n and_o his_o worship_n and_o the_o regard_n to_o these_o he_o call_v reverence_n and_o that_o lie_v in_o these_o thing_n 1._o discrimination_n from_o common_a use_n 2._o consecration_n to_o a_o sacred_a use_n 3._o suitable_a usage_n of_o they_o in_o regard_n of_o that_o relation_n but_o if_o you_o ask_v wherein_o the_o difference_n of_o this_o lie_v from_o worship_n he_o say_v from_o the_o great_a divine_n of_o your_o church_n that_o 2._o worship_n have_v a_o respect_n to_o power_n and_o superiority_n and_o that_o be_v 1._o civil_a in_o regard_n of_o the_o power_n and_o authority_n of_o magistrate_n 2._o religious_a in_o regard_n of_o god_n peculiar_a sovereignty_n over_o we_o and_o that_o be_v twofold_a 1._o internal_a in_o submission_n dependence_n 2._o external_n which_o must_v be_v 1._o such_o as_o express_v our_o submission_n and_o dependence_n as_o 1._o sacrifice_n 2._o solemn_a invocation_n 3._o adoration_n 4._o vow_n 5._o swear_v by_o he_o etc._n etc._n 2._o they_o must_v be_v peculiar_a to_o himself_o 1._o from_o the_o dictate_v of_o nature_n as_o to_o the_o peculiarity_n of_o god_n sovereignty_n 2._o from_o the_o will_n of_o god_n which_o appropriate_v such_o act_n to_o himself_o 3._o from_o the_o consent_n of_o nation_n and_o the_o christian_a church_n therefore_o the_o give_v that_o worship_n which_o be_v due_a to_o god_n and_o do_v express_v our_o subjection_n to_o he_o to_o any_o thing_n beside_o he_o be_v violation_n of_o the_o right_n of_o god_n sovereignty_n and_o if_o it_o be_v give_v to_o any_o creature_n it_o receive_v its_o denomination_n from_o the_o nature_n of_o that_o creature_n to_o which_o it_o be_v give_v 1._o to_o animate_v creature_n angel_n good_n bad._n dead_a man_n saint_n wicked_a brute_n of_o all_o sort_n 2._o to_o inanimate_a natural_a element_n mineral_n plant_n artificial_a make_v to_o represent_v the_o object_n of_o worship_n and_o therefore_o call_v image_n which_o be_v proper_o idolatry_n be_v the_o worship_n of_o a_o representation_n but_o because_o that_o word_n idol_n be_v extend_v to_o any_o creature_n to_o which_o the_o worship_n proper_a to_o god_n be_v give_v therefore_o every_o such_o kind_n of_o worship_n be_v in_o scripture_n and_o by_o the_o christian_a church_n call_v idolatry_n and_o by_o this_o scheme_n of_o dr._n st.'s_n notion_n of_o these_o thing_n you_o may_v easy_o understand_v the_o difference_n he_o put_v between_o reverence_n and_o worship_n r._n p._n but_o t._n g._n say_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n require_v by_o the_o term_n of_o communion_n with_o she_o 181._o no_o more_o than_o reverence_n or_o honorary_a respect_n to_o image_n p._n d._n why_o do_v t._n g._n go_v about_o thus_o to_o impose_v on_o his_o reader_n without_o answer_v what_o dr._n st._n have_v produce_v to_o the_o contrary_a from_o three_o thing_n 1._o from_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a 2._o from_o the_o constant_a opinion_n of_o their_o most_o eminent_a divine_n both_o before_o and_o after_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n 3._o from_o the_o public_a and_o allow_v practice_n of_o their_o church_n 1._o in_o consecration_n of_o image_n for_o worship_n with_o form_n prescribe_v in_o the_o roman_a pontifical_a 2._o in_o supplication_n before_o they_o with_o prostration_n and_o all_o other_o act_n of_o worship_n which_o the_o heathen_n use_v towards_o they_o 3._o in_o solemn_a procession_n with_o image_n with_o the_o same_o kind_n of_o pomp_n and_o ceremony_n which_o be_v use_v in_o heathen_a rome_n and_o after_o all_o this_o can_n t._n g._n have_v the_o confidence_n to_o say_v this_o be_v only_o honorary_a respect_n without_o answer_v to_o any_o one_o of_o these_o particular_n which_o be_v purposely_o allege_v to_o prove_v the_o contrary_a r._n p._n but_o now_o sir_n look_v to_o yourself_o for_o the_o patronus_fw-la bonae_fw-la fidei_fw-la knock_v all_o down_o before_o he_o and_o prove_v bow_v to_o the_o altar_n practise_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o be_v worse_o than_o popish_a or_o egyptian_a idolatry_n p._n d._n i_o hope_v not_o worse_o than_o the_o power_n of_o excommunication_n which_o the_o same_o excellent_a advocate_n for_o fanatic_n have_v bestow_v as_o ill_a name_n upon_o and_o with_o as_o little_a reason_n but_o such_o as_o it_o be_v i_o be_o prepare_v to_o receive_v it_o r._n p._n the_o patronus_fw-la bonae_fw-la fidei_fw-la say_v that_o however_o dr._n st._n wheadle_v and_o blind_v with_o preferment_n for_o that_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o t._n g.'s_n etc._n etc._n endeavour_v to_o palliate_v this_o kind_n of_o adoration_n 76._o and_o to_o vindicate_v it_o from_o the_o crime_n of_o idolatry_n yet_o i_o doubt_v not_o to_o affirm_v that_o this_o bow_v outvie_v the_o idolatry_n both_o of_o egyptian_n and_o romanist_n not_o only_o in_o horrible_a iniquity_n and_o enormity_n but_o in_o madness_n and_o folly_n f._n c._n who_o be_v this_o patronus_fw-la bonae_fw-la fidei_fw-la you_o speak_v so_o much_o of_o he_o be_v a_o good_a man_n i_o warrant_v he_o he_o speak_v home_o to_o the_o business_n p._n d._n yes_o if_o ignorance_n and_o confidence_n do_v it_o for_o never_o do_v man_n betray_v more_o than_o your_o advocate_n in_o this_o say_n f._n c._n he_o will_v prove_v it_o i_o warrant_v you_o p._n d._n just_o as_o you_o do_v kneel_v at_o the_o communion_n to_o be_v idolatry_n if_o so_o well_o but_o first_o for_o the_o roman_a idolatry_n r._n p._n it_o be_v not_o say_v he_o so_o much_o madness_n in_o they_o to_o adore_v the_o lord_n jesus_n under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n as_o it_o be_v a_o error_n in_o they_o to_o believe_v transubstantiation_n 183._o but_o it_o be_v a_o hypochondriacal_a madness_n and_o giddy-brained_a stupidity_n for_o man_n to_o perform_v adoration_n towards_o that_o place_n where_o christ_n be_v no_o more_o present_a than_o any_o where_o else_o and_o where_o neither_o the_o table_n nor_o altar_n nor_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v set_v upon_o the_o table_n unless_o perchance_o a_o clean_a towel_n two_o book_n rich_o bind_v or_o a_o pair_n of_o candlestick_n with_o two_o candle_n in_o they_o not_o to_o be_v light_v till_o their_o mind_n be_v quite_o drink_v with_o popery_n represent_v either_o christ_n or_o his_o image_n a_o fanatical_a adoration_n he_o call_v it_o without_o any_o object_n p._n d._n call_v you_o this_o prove_v it_o be_v rather_o rave_v and_o foam_v at_o the_o mouth_n this_o be_v such_o bite_n as_o may_v endanger_v a_o hydrophobia_n there_o be_v no_o argue_v with_o such_o a_o man_n but_o in_o a_o dark_a room_n and_o under_o good_a keeper_n but_o that_o you_o may_v take_v no_o advantage_n by_o his_o say_n how_o can_v it_o be_v idolatry_n without_o a_o object_n i.e._n idolatry_n without_o a_o idol_n but_o can_v there_o be_v no_o object_n of_o worship_n but_o what_o be_v visible_a what_o do_v he_o worship_v himself_o or_o rather_o who_o do_v his_o client_n the_o fanatic_n worship_n nothing_o because_o not_o a_o visible_a object_n be_v not_o adoration_n a_o part_n of_o worship_n if_o not_o it_o be_v no_o idolatry_n to_o give_v it_o to_o a_o image_n if_o it_o be_v then_o bow_v to_o a_o invisible_a object_n in_o a_o place_n dedicate_v to_o divine_a worship_n be_v give_v to_o god_n that_o worship_n which_o be_v give_v to_o a_o image_n make_v it_o idolatry_n i_o pray_v sir_n do_v you_o answer_v for_o he_o f._n c._n i_o understand_v you_o not_o p._n d._n i_o think_v so_o but_o i_o will_v endeavour_v to_o make_v you_o understand_v i_o be_v the_o bow_v down_o to_o a_o image_n idolatry_n f._n c._n yes_o without_o all_o doubt_n p._n d._n be_v not_o idolatry_n give_v to_o a_o creature_n the_o worship_n that_o be_v due_a to_o god_n f._n c._n yes_o p._n d._n how_o can_v that_o be_v give_v to_o a_o creature_n the_o worship_n due_a to_o god_n if_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o give_v this_o worship_n to_o god_n which_o you_o give_v to_o the_o creature_n f._n c._n i_o know_v not_o what_o you_o mean_v p._n d._n not_o yet_o be_v not_o adoration_n of_o a_o image_n idolatry_n f._n c._n yes_o i_o tell_v you_o so_o once_o already_o p._n d._n then_o adoration_n be_v to_o
person_n of_o the_o father_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v too_o r._n p._n you_o may_v account_v this_o a_o absurdity_n but_o we_o account_v it_o none_o at_o all_o yea_o some_o of_o our_o divine_n have_v say_v if_o the_o holy_a trinity_n be_v not_o every_o where_o yet_o it_o will_v be_v in_o the_o eucharist_n by_o virtue_n of_o this_o concomitancy_n p._n d._n i_o do_v not_o now_o meddle_v with_o your_o opinion_n i_o only_o consider_v the_o patronus_fw-la bonae_fw-la fidei_fw-la and_o his_o brethren_n who_o do_v look_v on_o these_o as_o absurdity_n and_o yet_o be_v so_o foolish_a to_o say_v that_o our_o worship_a god_n towards_o the_o altar_n be_v more_o absurd_a than_o your_o worship_a christ_n on_o the_o altar_n on_o supposition_n of_o transubstantiation_n but_o why_o worse_o than_o egyptian_a idolatry_n i_o beseech_v you_o r._n p._n the_o egyptian_n say_v he_o pretend_v some_o colour_n for_o their_o idolatry_n as_o than_o a_o ape_n or_o a_o cat_n or_o a_o wolf_n 184._o etc._n etc._n have_v some_o participation_n of_o the_o divinity_n but_o those_o that_o bow_v down_o to_o a_o wooden_a table_n be_v themselves_o stock_n with_o much_o more_o to_o that_o purpose_n p._n d._n be_v such_o a_o man_n to_o be_v endure_v in_o a_o christian_a commonwealth_n not_o to_o say_v a_o church_n for_o excommunication_n he_o regard_v not_o who_o parallel_v the_o adoration_n give_v only_o to_o the_o divine_a majesty_n as_o our_o church_n profess_v with_o the_o worship_n of_o a_o ape_n or_o a_o cat_n or_o a_o wolf_n &_o c_o nay_o he_o make_v the_o egyptian_a idolatry_n more_o reasonable_a than_o our_o worship_n of_o god_n the_o only_a thing_n that_o can_v excuse_v he_o be_v rage_n and_o madness_n and_o therefore_o i_o leave_v he_o to_o his_o keeper_n but_o i_o pray_v tell_v i_o be_v it_o mere_a kindness_n to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o make_v t._n g._n to_o produce_v all_o these_o passage_n at_o full_a length_n out_o of_o the_o patronus_fw-la bonae_fw-la fidei_fw-la or_o out_o of_o pure_a spite_n to_o dr._n st._n by_o so_o often_o repeat_v the_o passage_n of_o his_o being_n delinitus_fw-la &_o occaecatus_fw-la and_o why_o in_o such_o a_o place_n where_o he_o pretend_v only_o to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o dr._n st.'s_n vain_a and_o endless_a discourse_n do_v he_o bring_v in_o this_o at_o large_a be_v it_o only_o for_o his_o comfort_n to_o let_v he_o see_v there_o be_v one_o body_n at_o least_o in_o the_o world_n more_o foolish_a and_o impertinent_a than_o he_o we_o have_v see_v enough_o of_o what_o t._n g._n ought_v not_o to_o have_v do_v let_v we_o now_o see_v what_o he_o say_v dr._n st._n ought_v to_o have_v do_v r._n p._n the_o first_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v in_o a_o dispute_n 193._o be_v to_o settle_v the_o state_n of_o the_o controversy_n upon_o its_o true_a ground_n by_o lay_v down_o the_o true_a notion_n of_o the_o matter_n in_o debate_n therefore_o dr._n st._n aught_o in_o the_o first_o place_n to_o have_v give_v we_o the_o true_a notion_n of_o idolatry_n in_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n and_o then_o to_o have_v show_v that_o notion_n to_o have_v agree_v to_o the_o honour_n and_o veneration_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o her_o council_n declare_v may_v be_v give_v to_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o saint_n but_o he_o choose_v rather_o to_o dazzle_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o reader_n with_o the_o false_a light_n of_o mere_a external_a act_n the_o obscure_a practice_n even_o of_o wise_a heathen_n and_o the_o clash_n of_o school-divines_a p._n d._n now_o i_o hope_v we_o be_v come_v to_o something_o worthy_a of_o consideration_n i_o like_v the_o method_n of_o proceed_v very_o well_o and_o i_o like_v dr._n st.'s_n book_n the_o better_a because_o i_o think_v he_o pursue_v the_o right_a method_n begin_v first_o with_o the_o nature_n of_o idolatry_n and_o divine_a worship_n and_o then_o come_v to_o the_o first_o particular_a of_o image-worship_n which_o he_o have_v handle_v with_o great_a care_n and_o exactness_n in_o respect_n of_o your_o council_n as_o well_o as_o your_o practice_n and_o school-divines_a r._n p._n it_o be_v true_a he_o propose_v well_o at_o first_o etc._n but_o like_o a_o preacher_n that_o have_v patch_v up_o a_o sermon_n out_o of_o his_o notebook_n he_o name_v his_o text_n and_o then_o take_v his_o leave_n of_o it_o for_o what_o he_o be_v to_o speak_v to_o be_v idolatry_n in_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n independent_o of_o any_o positive_a law_n whereas_o he_o speak_v only_o of_o a_o idolatry_n forbid_v by_o a_o positive_a law_n but_o if_o there_o be_v no_o idolatry_n antecedent_n to_o a_o positive_a prohibition_n the_o heathen_n can_v not_o be_v just_o charge_v with_o idolatry_n p._n d._n in_o my_o mind_n he_o do_v not_o recede_v from_o his_o text_n at_o all_o but_o pursue_v it_o close_o but_o you_o be_v uneasy_a at_o his_o application_n and_o therefore_o find_v fault_n with_o his_o handle_n his_o text._n what_o can_v a_o man_n speak_v to_o more_o pertinent_o as_o to_o idolatry_n in_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n than_o to_o consider_v what_o that_o be_v which_o be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v idolatry_n both_o in_o the_o heathen_n and_o arrian_n what_o that_o be_v which_o the_o primitive_a church_n account_v idolatry_n in_o they_o what_o opinon_n those_o have_v of_o god_n who_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v charge_n with_o idolatry_n wherein_o the_o nature_n of_o divine_a worship_n consist_v not_o only_o with_o respect_n to_o positive_a command_n but_o the_o general_a consent_n of_o mankind_n do_v 210._o he_o not_o express_o argue_v from_o the_o reason_n and_o design_n of_o solemn_a religious_a worship_n abstract_o from_o positive_a law_n do_v he_o not_o show_v 215._o from_o many_o testimony_n that_o the_o heathen_n do_v look_v on_o some_o peculiar_a rite_n of_o divine_a worship_n as_o sacred_a and_o inviolable_a that_o they_o choose_v rather_o to_o die_v than_o to_o give_v they_o any_o but_o a_o divine_a object_n it_o be_v true_a after_o this_o he_o inquire_v into_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o what_o act_n of_o worship_n he_o have_v appropriate_v to_o himself_o and_o be_v there_o not_o great_a reason_n to_o do_v so_o be_v we_o unconcern_v in_o the_o law_n god_n make_v for_o his_o worship_n in_o my_o apprehension_n this_o be_v the_o great_a thing_n t._n g._n have_v to_o do_v to_o prove_v that_o god_n law_n about_o worship_n be_v bare_o ceremonial_a and_o only_o respect_v the_o jew_n but_o that_o we_o be_v leave_v to_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n about_o religious_a worship_n but_o he_o neither_o do_v this_o nor_o if_o he_o have_v do_v it_o have_v he_o overthrow_v dr_n st.'s_n book_n for_o he_o prove_v in_o several_a place_n that_o the_o heathen_n have_v the_o same_o distinction_n of_o sovereign_a and_o inferior_a worship_n absolute_a and_o relative_a which_o be_v use_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o if_o these_o do_v excuse_v now_o they_o will_v have_v excuse_v they_o who_o by_o scripture_n and_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n be_v condemn_v for_o idolatry_n and_o judge_v you_o now_o whether_o dr._n st._n take_v leave_v of_o his_o text_n whether_o he_o do_v not_o speak_v to_o idolatry_n in_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n r._n p._n but_o he_o say_v etc._n the_o heathen_n can_v not_o understand_v the_o nature_n and_o sinfulness_n of_o idolatry_n if_o not_o from_o some_o law_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o effect_n to_o clear_v the_o heathen_n from_o idolatry_n till_o that_o law_n be_v deliver_v to_o they_o whereas_o s._n paul_n say_v they_o have_v a_o law_n write_v in_o their_o heart_n whereby_o they_o may_v understand_v it_o and_o dr._n st._n ought_v to_o have_v show_v wherein_o the_o deordination_n and_o sinfulness_n of_o idolatry_n do_v consist_v antecedent_o to_o any_o positive_a prohibition_n and_o till_o this_o be_v do_v he_o can_v make_v no_o parallel_n between_o the_o heathen_a idolatry_n and_o that_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n p._n d._n i_o be_o glad_a to_o find_v any_o thing_n that_o look_v like_o a_o difficulty_n which_o may_v give_v a_o occasion_n of_o far_a thought_n about_o this_o weighty_a matter_n and_o of_o clear_v the_o doctor_n mind_n concern_v it_o herein_o i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o explain_v these_o two_o thing_n 1._o how_o far_o dr._n st._n do_v make_v the_o nature_n and_o sinfulness_n of_o idolatry_n to_o depend_v on_o the_o law_n of_o god_n 2._o wherein_o the_o sinfulness_n of_o idolatry_n do_v consist_v abstract_o from_o a_o positive_a law_n 1._o how_o far_o he_o make_v the_o sinfulness_n of_o it_o to_o depend_v on_o a_o positive_a law_n 1._o he_o suppose_v natural_a religion_n to_o dictate_v these_o thing_n 197._o 1._o that_o god_n ought_v to_o be_v solemn_o worship_v 2._o that_o this_o worship_n ought_v to_o be_v
second_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o modern_a divine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n from_o the_o general_a practice_n of_o their_o church_n 2._o in_o give_v the_o worship_n of_o latria_n to_o image_n 639._o which_o be_v condemn_v by_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o notwithstanding_o be_v defend_v by_o multitude_n of_o divine_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n from_o the_o allow_a practice_n in_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o cross_n both_o before_o and_o after_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n after_o which_o he_o inquire_v at_o large_a into_o the_o public_a office_n and_o commend_v devotion_n of_o that_o church_n in_o respect_n to_o image_n and_o from_o thence_o he_o 699._o prove_v that_o 1._o as_o to_o consecration_n of_o image_n for_o worship_n 2._o as_o to_o the_o rite_n of_o supplication_n to_o they_o 3._o as_o to_o pompous_a procession_n with_o they_o the_o modern_a church_n of_o rome_n do_v not_o fall_v short_a of_o the_o practice_n of_o pagan_a rome_n and_o do_v you_o think_v all_o this_o be_v not_o apply_v the_o notion_n of_o idolatry_n home_o to_o the_o roman_a church_n when_o 1._o he_o show_v by_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a the_o modern_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v chargeable_a with_o idolatry_n 2._o that_o the_o practice_n agreeable_a with_o that_o council_n be_v charge_v with_o idolatry_n by_o the_o western_a church_n in_o the_o council_n of_o francford_n not_o from_o any_o mistake_n of_o their_o meaning_n but_o because_o they_o look_v on_o the_o worship_n then_o decree_v to_o be_v proper_a adoration_n r._n p._n 214._o but_o t._n g._n say_v if_o the_o worship_n define_v by_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a be_v inferior_a worship_n and_o not_o latria_n as_o dr._n st._n confess_v than_o nothing_o can_v be_v clear_a than_o that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o worship_n due_a to_o god_n and_o consequent_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v be_v chargeable_a with_o idolatry_n from_o any_o thing_n contain_v in_o that_o decree_n p._n d._n will_n t._n g._n never_o understand_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o person_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o act_n they_o may_v declare_v it_o to_o be_v only_o inferior_a worship_n but_o the_o council_n of_o francford_n take_v it_o to_o be_v proper_a adoration_n which_o be_v due_a only_o to_o god_n and_o if_o that_o council_n judgement_n must_v stand_v all_o those_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n who_o give_v latria_n to_o the_o cross_n must_v be_v guilty_a of_o idolatry_n r._n p._n do_v not_o the_o church_n of_o england_n allow_v bow_v to_o the_o altar_n which_o if_o the_o altar_n have_v any_o sense_n will_v think_v be_v do_v to_o it_o as_o t._n g._n say_v etc._n he_o be_v certain_o inform_v of_o a_o country_n fellow_n who_o be_v get_v near_o the_o altar_n in_o his_o majesty_n chapel_n think_v all_o the_o congee_n have_v be_v make_v to_o he_o and_o so_o return_v congee_n for_o congee_n and_o if_o bow_v may_v be_v use_v out_o of_o religious_a respect_n to_o the_o altar_n why_o not_o kneel_v or_o prostration_n or_o fix_v our_o eye_n in_o time_n of_o prayer_n or_o burn_a incense_n or_o light_n before_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o saint_n but_o how_o can_v dr._n st._n purge_v the_o church_n of_o england_n from_o idolatry_n in_o that_o practice_n when_o he_o say_v that_o any_o image_n be_v make_v so_o far_o the_o object_n of_o divine_a worship_n that_o man_n do_v bow_v down_o before_o it_o and_o he_o suppose_v the_o same_o will_v hold_v for_o any_o other_o creature_n it_o do_v thereby_o become_v a_o idol_n and_o on_o that_o account_n be_v forbid_v in_o the_o second_o commandment_n p._n d._n what_o will_v t._n g._n have_v do_v have_v it_o not_o be_v for_o this_o practice_n of_o bow_v towards_o the_o altar_n when_o yet_o he_o can_v but_o know_v that_o the_o practice_n of_o it_o be_v not_o enjoin_v by_o our_o church_n for_o the_o canon_n leave_v it_o at_o liberty_n if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v the_o same_o about_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n the_o parallel_n will_v hold_v somewhat_o better_o but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n declare_v religious_a worship_n be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o image_n and_o our_o church_n declare_v that_o none_o be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o altar_n and_o do_v not_o this_o make_v a_o apparent_a difference_n if_o the_o country_n fellow_n stand_v without_o the_o rail_v fancy_v the_o congee_n make_v to_o himself_o what_o will_v he_o have_v do_v if_o he_o have_v stand_v within_o a_o image_n of_o our_o lady_n and_o see_v all_o the_o courtship_n that_o have_v be_v use_v towards_o she_o by_o some_o of_o her_o devote_a servant_n and_o slave_n when_o he_o behold_v the_o bare_a knee_n bleed_v the_o tear_n trickle_v the_o breast_n knock_v the_o eye_n scarce_o lift_v up_o to_o show_v the_o great_a reverence_n and_o humility_n towards_o the_o image_n what_o can_v he_o have_v think_v but_o that_o he_o be_v shut_v up_o within_o the_o bowel_n of_o the_o goddess_n they_o worship_v whereas_o if_o the_o country_n fellow_n have_v go_v up_o into_o the_o court_n and_o see_v the_o ancient_a servant_n make_v their_o reverence_n after_o dinner_n in_o the_o presence_n chamber_n he_o will_v soon_o have_v be_v better_o inform_v if_o some_o of_o the_o old_a courtier_n have_v tell_v he_o it_o be_v the_o ancient_a custom_n of_o the_o court_n to_o make_v their_o reverence_n in_o all_o chamber_n of_o presence_n and_o from_o thence_o when_o they_o go_v into_o his_o majesty_n chapel_n they_o use_v the_o same_o custom_n out_o of_o reverence_n to_o god_n almighty_a who_o presence-chamber_n they_o account_v the_o chapel_n to_o be_v what_o be_v all_o this_o to_o give_v religious_a worship_n to_o the_o altar_n wherein_o the_o force_n of_o all_o t._n g._n sai_z must_v lie_v r._n p._n but_o you_o do_v bow_n before_o the_o altar_n as_o we_o do_v before_o image_n p._n d._n i_o utter_o deny_v that_o for_o your_o church_n declare_v bow_v before_o image_n without_o a_o intention_n to_o worship_v the_o image_n be_v next_o to_o heresy_n if_o we_o be_v to_o take_v the_o sense_n of_o your_o council_n from_o their_o own_o word_n and_o the_o explication_n of_o divine_n you_o explode_v their_o doctrine_n who_o say_v that_o we_o be_v only_o to_o worship_n god_n before_o they_o and_o be_v there_o no_o difference_n between_o the_o act_n of_o these_o two_o man_n as_o to_o image_n themselves_o the_o one_o declare_v that_o he_o look_v on_o no_o religious_a worship_n as_o due_a to_o a_o image_n but_o it_o serve_v he_o only_o to_o put_v he_o in_o mind_n of_o he_o who_o be_v the_o proper_a object_n of_o worship_n and_o he_o never_o intend_v by_o any_o act_n of_o he_o to_o worship_v the_o image_n itself_o another_o say_v the_o church_n require_v image_n to_o be_v worship_v and_o for_o my_o part_n i_o think_v myself_o bind_v to_o do_v what_o the_o church_n require_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v my_o intention_n to_o give_v worship_n not_o bare_o to_o the_o object_n represent_v but_o to_o the_o very_a image_n itself_o although_o it_o be_v on_o the_o account_n of_o its_o representation_n and_o the_o latter_a dr._n st._n have_v show_v to_o be_v the_o only_o allow_v sense_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o other_o reject_v either_o as_o heretical_a or_o next_o to_o it_o which_o t._n g._n never_o so_o much_o as_o once_o take_v notice_n of_o but_o however_o this_o do_v not_o reach_v our_o case_n for_o we_o believe_v the_o second_o commandment_n to_o be_v still_o in_o force_n which_o be_v express_v and_o positive_a against_o all_o worship_n of_o image_n and_o bow_v down_o to_o they_o but_o that_o which_o be_v lawful_a among_o the_o jew_n notwithstanding_o that_o precept_n viz._n to_o worship_n god_n towards_o the_o mercy_n seat_n be_v still_o lawful_a among_o christian_n viz._n to_o worship_n god_n alone_o but_o towards_o the_o altar_n and_o thus_o i_o hope_v t._n g._n will_n at_o last_o be_v bring_v a_o little_a better_a to_o understand_v the_o sense_n of_o our_o church_n in_o this_o practice_n and_o how_o far_o it_o be_v from_o be_v a_o parallel_n with_o your_o worship_n of_o image_n r._n p._n t._n g._n find_v great_a fault_n with_o dr._n st._n be_v citation_n out_o of_o card._n lugo_n about_o submission_n to_o image_n 227._o because_o he_o leave_v out_o aliquis_fw-la and_o potest_fw-la dici_fw-la and_o i_o tell_v you_o he_o make_v a_o huge_a outcry_n about_o it_o and_o fill_v up_o several_a page_n with_o it_o p._n d._n do_v he_o true_o it_o be_v a_o great_a sign_n he_o want_v matter_n to_o fill_v up_o his_o book_n but_o i_o pray_v on_o what_o occasion_n be_v this_o passage_n bring_v in_o it_o may_v be_v that_o will_v give_v we_o some_o light_n
worship_n but_o a_o occasional_a and_o rare_a thing_n and_o do_v upon_o supposition_n as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v alive_a and_o then_o present_a among_o they_o and_o that_o the_o practice_n of_o these_o man_n who_o seem_v most_o to_o make_v address_n to_o saint_n in_o the_o four_o century_n do_v differ_v from_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n in_o your_o church_n i_o shall_v make_v appear_v by_o these_o particular_n 1._o invocation_n of_o saint_n be_v make_v a_o solemn_a part_n of_o religious_a worship_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o which_o we_o do_v not_o run_v to_o some_o extravagant_a expression_n of_o your_o preacher_n nor_o bare_o to_o the_o ave_fw-la mary_n they_o use_v in_o their_o pulpit_n of_o which_o no_o single_a instance_n can_v be_v produce_v out_o of_o antiquity_n but_o to_o the_o public_a solemn_a authorize_v office_n of_o your_o church_n and_o although_o you_o may_v say_v the_o church_n be_v not_o answerable_a for_o the_o indiscretion_n of_o preacher_n or_o the_o figure_n of_o poet_n yet_o certain_o she_o be_v for_o all_o stand_n and_o allow_v office_n of_o divine_a worship_n and_o this_o be_v that_o we_o charge_v you_o with_o that_o by_o this_o you_o make_v religious_a worship_n of_o the_o creature_n a_o part_n of_o your_o constant_a and_o solemn_a worship_n even_o in_o the_o mass_n itself_o you_o begin_v with_o confession_n to_o god_n and_o to_o his_o creature_n which_o athanasius_n account_v so_o great_a a_o impiety_n to_o join_v god_n and_o his_o creature_n together_o in_o a_o act_n of_o worship_n and_o afterward_o pray_v to_o they_o and_o although_o in_o the_o plain_a canon_n of_o the_o mass_n you_o pretend_v there_o be_v scarce_o any_o or_o but_o twice_o or_o thrice_o a_o direct_a invocation_n of_o the_o saint_n yet_o upon_o occasional_a and_o anniversary_n mass_n such_o invocation_n be_v very_o frequent_a as_o in_o the_o mass_n of_o the_o festival_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n which_o be_v many_o in_o the_o year_n the_o mass_n for_o woman_n with_o child_n the_o mass_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o angel_n michael_n and_o many_o saint_n which_o it_o be_v tedious_a to_o repeat_v it_o will_v be_v endless_a to_o give_v a_o account_n how_o much_o of_o your_o breviaries_n hour_n litany_n and_o private_a office_n of_o devotion_n be_v stuff_v out_o with_o formal_a address_n to_o saint_n if_o you_o but_o cast_v your_o eye_n on_o any_o of_o the_o office_n of_o the_o b._n virgin_n you_o can_v question_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o now_o i_o pray_v tell_v i_o where_o you_o meet_v with_o any_o like_o this_o in_o antiquity_n you_o may_v pick_v up_o some_o flourish_n of_o orator_n or_o poet_n in_o the_o four_o century_n but_o what_o be_v these_o to_o the_o stand_a office_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o standard_n of_o divine_a worship_n name_v i_o any_o one_o liturgy_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v authentic_a that_o have_v the_o name_n of_o a●y_a saint_n or_o creature_n in_o it_o by_o way_n of_o invocation_n before_o the_o time_n of_o petrus_n fallo_n who_o be_v no_o author_n to_o be_v glory_v in_o and_o of_o he_o indeed_o nicephorus_n say_v that_o he_o first_o bring_v the_o invocation_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n into_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n 28._o before_o his_o time_n the_o father_n utter_o deny_v there_o be_v any_o invocation_n of_o saint_n in_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o faithful_a 347._o as_o dr._n st._n have_v evident_o prove_v from_o st._n augustin_n and_o methinks_v t._n g._n shall_v have_v say_v something_a or_o other_o to_o it_o and_o not_o think_v this_o poor_a single_a testimony_n of_o gregory_n nyssen_n will_v overthrow_v all_o 2._o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n in_o your_o church_n be_v direct_a and_o formal_a not_o mere_o by_o way_n of_o desire_n to_o pray_v for_o they_o but_o to_o bestow_v blessing_n upon_o they_o of_o which_o dr._n st._n have_v produce_v several_a late_a instance_n in_o book_n of_o devotion_n now_o in_o use_n here_o in_o england_n 305._o to_o which_o many_o more_o may_v be_v add_v if_o it_o be_v needful_a and_o it_o be_v a_o wonder_n to_o i_o that_o any_o man_n who_o have_v look_v into_o the_o office_n of_o the_o b._n virgin_n can_v make_v the_o least_o doubt_n of_o this_o and_o consider_v the_o title_n give_v she_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n it_o be_v a_o disparagement_n to_o she_o not_o to_o pray_v direct_o to_o she_o for_o blessing_n for_o if_o she_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o grace_n and_o mercy_n the_o mother_n of_o consolation_n the_o safety_n of_o all_o that_o trust_v in_o she_o the_o dispenser_n of_o grace_n to_o who_o she_o please_v the_o queen_n of_o heaven_n to_o who_o all_o power_n be_v commit_v the_o mediatrix_fw-la between_o her_o son_n and_o we_o as_o she_o be_v style_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n why_o may_v not_o man_n pray_v as_o direct_o to_o she_o as_o to_o christ_n himself_o as_o long_o as_o these_o and_o many_o other_o title_n be_v own_v in_o their_o prayer_n in_o their_o sacred_a hymn_n in_o their_o commentator_n on_o scripture_n and_o not_o mere_o in_o their_o poet_n and_o orator_n why_o do_v t._n g._n go_v about_o to_o deceive_v the_o world_n in_o make_v it_o believe_v that_o all_o their_o invocation_n be_v only_o pray_v to_o pray_v for_o they_o which_o be_v all_o that_o be_v pretend_v to_o be_v use_v in_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o cassander_n think_v they_o be_v rather_o wish_n and_o desire_n than_o prayer_n 1109._o for_o which_o he_o give_v a_o very_a good_a reason_n viz._n that_o there_o be_v a_o condition_n express_v by_o they_o such_o as_o that_o of_o greg._n nazianzen_n in_o his_o oration_n on_o his_o sister_n gorgonia_n if_o thou_o have_v any_o regard_n to_o our_o affair_n and_o if_o this_o be_v part_n of_o the_o reward_n of_o holy_a soul_n to_o be_v sensible_a of_o thing_n do_v below_o receive_v this_o office_n of_o kindness_n from_o i_o which_o show_v they_o have_v no_o confidence_n or_o assurance_n that_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n do_v understand_v our_o affair_n and_o therefore_o all_o expression_n of_o this_o kind_n in_o they_o be_v rather_o wish_n than_o prayer_n and_o even_o greg._n nyssen_n in_o this_o oration_n upon_o theodore_n suppose_v 585._o that_o unless_o he_o come_v down_o from_o above_o wherever_o he_o be_v whether_o in_o the_o aethereal_a region_n or_o celestial_a or_o angelical_a and_o be_v actual_o present_a among_o they_o he_o can_v not_o understand_v the_o honour_n that_o be_v do_v he_o nor_o the_o address_n they_o make_v to_o he_o and_o when_o they_o do_v express_v such_o a_o uncertainty_n as_o this_o at_o the_o same_o time_n they_o make_v these_o address_n towards_o the_o conclusion_n of_o their_o oration_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o orator_n it_o be_v plain_a they_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v rather_o for_o rhetorical_a wish_n than_o formal_a invocation_n now_o let_v any_o man_n compare_v this_o doubtfulness_n of_o the_o ancient_n with_o the_o confidence_n express_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n when_o they_o declare_v it_o to_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la that_o the_o saint_n do_v hear_v they_o although_o the_o manner_n be_v not_o and_o then_o judge_v whether_o their_o practice_n can_v be_v of_o the_o same_o kind_n 3._o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n in_o your_o church_n do_v imply_v inward_a submission_n to_o a_o creature_n and_o therefore_o go_v very_o much_o beyond_o the_o address_n of_o the_o ancient_n there_o be_v three_o thing_n which_o prove_v this_o inward_a submission_n to_o a_o creature_n in_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n 1._o inward_a devotion_n to_o they_o 2._o a_o acknowledge_a superiority_n over_o they_o 3._o a_o intention_n to_o give_v they_o divine_a worship_n 1._o inward_a devotion_n for_o even_o mental_a prayer_n to_o saint_n be_v allow_v by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n as_o dr._n st._n tell_v t._n g._n 293._o of_o which_o he_o take_v no_o notice_n and_o yet_o quarrel_n with_o he_o for_o two_o other_o passage_n in_o the_o same_o place_n must_v we_o impute_v this_o to_o a_o casual_a vndulation_n of_o the_o visual_a ray_n 256._o as_o t._n g._n very_o fine_o express_v it_o i_o be_o afraid_a there_o be_v some_o other_o cause_n for_o it_o for_o since_o that_o council_n allow_v internal_a prayer_n to_o saint_n it_o must_v not_o only_o certain_o suppose_v their_o knowledge_n of_o the_o heart_n but_o a_o due_a submission_n of_o our_o soul_n to_o they_o which_o inward_a prayer_n do_v import_v and_o therefore_o suppliciter_fw-la invocare_fw-la tam_fw-la voce_fw-la quam_fw-la ment_fw-la which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n do_v not_o only_o imply_v formal_a invocation_n but_o internal_a submission_n both_o which_o do_v belong_v to_o suppliant_n 2._o a_o acknowledge_a superiority_n over_o they_o which_o appear_v by_o that_o authority_n and_o government_n which_o they_o attribute_v to_o they_o
say_v if_o christ_n be_v the_o sacrifice_n he_o must_v be_v slay_v again_o at_o every_o mass_n as_o he_o be_v once_o on_o the_o cross_n or_o you_o can_v assign_v no_o destruction_n which_o you_o say_v be_v necessary_a to_o such_o a_o true_a and_o proper_a sacrifice_n r._n p._n do_v not_o you_o observe_v t._n g.'s_n word_n that_o christ_n be_v whole_a under_o either_o species_n and_o his_o blood_n separate_v from_o his_o body_n not_o real_o but_o mystical_o only_a and_o in_o representation_n p._n d._n how_o be_v that_o whole_a christ_n under_o the_o bread_n and_o whole_a christ_n under_o the_o wine_n and_o the_o blood_n separate_v from_o the_o body_n not_o real_o but_o mystical_o only_a and_o by_o representation_n this_o be_v admirable_a stuff_n and_o true_a mystical_a divinity_n if_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n do_v remain_v whole_a and_o entire_a where_o be_v the_o true_a proper_a sacrifice_n where_o be_v the_o change_n make_v if_o not_o in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n if_o that_o be_v uncapable_a of_o a_o change_n how_o can_v it_o be_v a_o true_a and_o proper_a sacrifice_n if_o the_o blood_n be_v not_o real_o separate_v from_o the_o body_n where_o be_v the_o mactation_n which_o must_v be_v in_o a_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n if_o christ_n do_v remain_v whole_a and_o entire_a after_o all_o the_o sacrificial_a act_n where_o i_o say_v be_v the_o true_a and_o proper_a sacrifice_n t._n g._n have_v far_o better_o say_v and_o more_o agreeable_o to_o scripture_n antiquity_n and_o reason_n that_o there_o be_v no_o real_a and_o proper_a sacrifice_n on_o the_o altar_n but_o only_o mystical_a and_o by_o representation_n r._n p._n but_o t._n g._n say_v that_o religion_n which_o admit_v no_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n 512._o must_v needs_o be_v deficient_a in_o the_o most_o signal_n part_v of_o the_o public_a worship_n of_o god_n p._n d._n i_o pray_v remember_v it_o be_v a_o external_a and_o visible_a sacrifice_n which_o you_o contend_v for_o and_o now_o tell_v i_o where_o it_o be_v in_o your_o church_n do_v it_o lie_v in_o the_o mimical_a gesture_n of_o the_o priest_n at_o the_o altar_n in_o imitation_n of_o christ_n on_o the_o cross_n if_o that_o be_v it_o the_o necessary_a consumption_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n will_v be_v no_o comfortable_a doctrine_n to_o the_o priest_n do_v it_o lie_v in_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o element_n which_o be_v visible_a but_o you_o say_v the_o essence_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n consist_v in_o the_o change_n and_o we_o can_v see_v no_o visible_a change_n make_v in_o they_o and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o external_a and_o visible_a sacrifice_n beside_o if_o the_o sacrifice_n do_v lie_v in_o the_o change_n of_o the_o element_n after_o consecration_n into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n than_o the_o element_n be_v the_o thing_n sacrifice_v and_o not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o destructive_a change_n be_v as_o to_o the_o element_n and_o not_o as_o to_o the_o body_n of_o christ._n or_o do_v it_o lie_v in_o the_o swallow_a down_o and_o consumption_n of_o the_o species_n after_o consecration_n by_o the_o priest_n but_o here_o likewise_o the_o change_n be_v in_o the_o accident_n and_o not_o in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o remain_v whole_a and_o entire_a though_o the_o species_n be_v consume_v and_o i_o think_v there_o be_v some_o difference_n between_o change_v one_o seat_n and_o be_v sacrifice_v for_o all_o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v pretend_v to_o be_v change_v in_o be_v only_o its_o being_n no_o long_o under_o the_o species_n but_o t._n g._n i_o suppose_v will_v allow_v it_o to_o be_v whole_a and_o entire_a still_o do_v it_o then_o lie_v in_o pronounce_v the_o word_n of_o consecration_n upon_o which_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o the_o blood_n under_o that_o of_o wine_n and_o so_o separate_v from_o the_o body_n but_o this_o can_v least_o of_o all_o be_v since_o t._n g._n assure_v we_o that_o whole_a christ_n be_v under_o the_o bread_n as_o well_o as_o under_o the_o wine_n and_o so_o there_o can_v be_v so_o much_o as_o a_o moment_n of_o real_a separation_n between_o they_o and_o we_o know_v how_o necessary_a for_o other_o purpose_n the_o doctrine_n of_o concomitancy_n be_v tell_v i_o then_o where_o be_v your_o external_a and_o visible_a sacrifice_n which_o you_o boast_v so_o much_o of_o since_o according_a to_o your_o own_o principle_n there_o be_v nothing_o that_o belong_v to_o the_o essence_n of_o a_o sacrifice_n be_v external_a and_o visible_a and_o consequent_o your_o own_o church_n labour_v under_o the_o defect_n t._n g._n complain_v of_o r._n p._n but_o what_o make_v dr._n st._n so_o bitter_a against_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o altar_n since_o the_o most_o true_a and_o genuine_a son_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v allow_v it_o etc._n as_o mr._n thorndike_n dr._n heylin_n and_o bishop_n andrews_n and_o do_v not_o this_o rather_o look_v like_o betray_v the_o church_n of_o england_n than_o defend_v it_o p._n d._n i_o see_v now_o you_o be_v wheel_v about_o to_o your_o first_o post_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v time_n to_o give_v you_o a_o space_n of_o breathe_v your_o great_a business_n be_v to_o set_v we_o at_o variance_n among_o ourselves_o but_o you_o have_v hitherto_o fail_v in_o your_o attempt_n and_o i_o hope_v will_v do_v i_o do_v not_o think_v any_o two_o or_o three_o man_n though_o never_o so_o learn_v make_v the_o church_n of_o england_n her_o sense_n be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o public_a act_n and_o office_n belong_v to_o it_o and_o in_o the_o article_n to_o which_o t._n g._n sometime_o appeal_v 31._o your_o sacrifice_n on_o the_o altar_n be_v call_v blasphemous_a figment_n and_o dangerous_a imposture_n but_o as_o to_o these_o three_o person_n i_o answer_v thus_o 1._o mr._n thorndike_n as_o i_o have_v show_v already_o 88_o declare_v against_o the_o true_a proper_a sacrifice_n define_v by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n as_o a_o innovation_n and_o a_o contradiction_n and_o that_o which_o he_o plead_v for_o be_v that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v a_o commemorative_n and_o representative_a sacrifice_n about_o which_o dr._n st._n will_v never_o contend_v with_o he_o or_o any_o one_o else_o and_o immediate_o after_o the_o word_n cite_v by_o t._n g._n he_o add_v these_o 40._o it_o be_v therefore_o enough_o that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n on_o the_o cross_n as_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n on_o the_o cross_n be_v represent_v renew_v revive_v and_o restore_v by_o it_o and_o as_o every_o representation_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n with_o that_o which_o it_o represent_v 2._o pet._n heylins_n word_n be_v express_o only_a for_o a_o commemorative_n sacrifice_n 24._o as_o t._n g._n himself_o produce_v they_o and_o therefore_o i_o wonder_v what_o t._n g._n mean_v in_o cite_v they_o at_o large_a for_o he_o quote_v the_o english_a liturgy_n for_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n and_o thanksgiving_n and_o s._n chrysostom_n call_v it_o the_o remembrance_n of_o a_o sacrifice_n and_o many_o of_o our_o learned_a writer_n a_o commemorative_a sacrifice_n what_o be_v there_o in_o all_o this_o in_o the_o least_o repugnant_a to_o what_o dr._n st._n have_v deliver_v r._n p._n but_o he_o quote_v bishop_n andrews_n say_v take_v from_o the_o mass_n your_o transubstantiation_n and_o we_o will_v have_v no_o difference_n with_o you_o about_o the_o sacrfiice_fw-la p._n d._n bishop_n andrews_n call_v the_o eucharist_n a_o commemorative_n sacrifice_n 184._o and_o he_o say_v it_o be_v proper_o eucharistical_a or_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o peace-offering_n concern_v which_o the_o law_n be_v that_o he_o that_o offer_v shall_v partake_v of_o they_o and_o a_o little_a after_o follow_v those_o word_n you_o mention_n to_o which_o he_o add_v we_o yield_v you_o that_o there_o be_v a_o remembrance_n of_o christ_n sacrifice_n but_o we_o shall_v never_o yield_v that_o your_o christ_n be_v make_v of_o bread_n be_v there_o sacrifice_v which_o be_v the_o very_a thing_n that_o t._n g._n be_v so_o angry_a with_o dr._n st._n about_o and_o have_v not_o you_o brave_o prove_v that_o dr._n st._n have_v herein_o go_v against_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o genuine_a son_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n if_o you_o have_v any_o thing_n yet_o leave_v which_o you_o think_v material_a i_o pray_v let_v we_o have_v it_o now_o for_o fear_v lest_o t._n g._n make_v use_n of_o it_o to_o stuff_n out_o another_o book_n r._n p._n i_o think_v we_o be_v near_o the_o bottom_n p._n d._n so_o i_o imagine_v by_o the_o dregs_o which_o come_v last_o r._n p._n there_o be_v one_o thing_n yet_o leave_v for_o a_o close_a 523._o which_o be_v dr._n st._n say_v suppose_v this_o sacrifice_n be_v allow_v yet_o this_o do_v not_o prove_v that_o we_o reserve_v any_o